hear_n and_o final_a decision_n of_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n faith_n be_v you_o ignorant_a that_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o we_o be_v first_o write_v unto_o that_o from_o hence_o may_v proceed_v the_o just_a decision_n of_o thing_n and_o therefore_o if_o any_o suspicion_n be_v conceyve_v against_o your_o bishop_n there_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v refer_v hither_o to_o our_o church_n and_o then_o declare_v unto_o they_o that_o this_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a he_o denounce_v unto_o they_o that_o in_o condemn_a athanasius_n without_o expect_v his_o sentence_n they_o have_v do_v contra_fw-la canon_n against_o the_o canon_n to_o wit_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n which_o he_o set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o his_o second_o epistle_n to_o they_o &_o that_o as_o well_o athanasius_n in_o appeal_n from_o their_o council_n to_o he_o as_o also_o he_o in_o repeal_n their_o act_n &_o in_o restore_v to_o their_o seat_n athanasius_n &_o the_o other_o bishop_n who_o they_o have_v depose_v and_o in_o summon_v their_o adversary_n to_o appear_v at_o rome_n &_o yield_v account_n of_o their_o proceed_n have_v do_v quod_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la canonis_fw-la est_fw-la according_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o innocentius_n the_o first_o who_o s._n augustine_n s._n hierome_n and_o other_o father_n of_o that_o age_n high_o commend_v he_o ordain_v epise_v ordain_v ep._n ad_fw-la victric_n rhotomag_n epise_v that_o if_o any_o difference_n arise_v between_o priest_n their_o cause_n be_v judge_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n but_o that_o great_a cause_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o the_o nicen_n council_n have_v ordain_v 3._o the_o same_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o s._n leo_n the_o great_a who_o write_v to_o theodosius_n the_o young_a 4ââ_n young_a ep._n 4ââ_n and_o represent_v unto_o he_o the_o sacrilegious_a proceed_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n which_o he_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n have_v call_v and_o impious_o maintain_v &_o that_o flavianus_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n which_o in_o that_o council_n have_v be_v injust_o depose_v and_o many_o way_n wrong_v flee_v to_o he_o for_o redress_n present_v a_o writ_n of_o appeal_v to_o his_o legate_n intreat_v his_o assistance_n for_o the_o call_n of_o a_o general_a council_n in_o italy_n add_v that_o the_o nicen_n canous_a necessary_o require_v the_o call_n of_o a_o council_n after_o the_o put_n in_o of_o a_o appeal_v this_o show_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a decree_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o appeal_n from_o general_a counsel_n to_o the_o pope_n nor_o be_v you_o ignorant_a thereof_o for_o afterward_o 308._o afterward_o pag._n 308._o you_o bring_v these_o very_a word_n of_o s._n leo_n against_o appeal_v to_o he_o but_o not_o without_o great_a eclipse_n of_o judgement_n for_o in_o they_o two_o thing_n be_v clear_o express_v the_o one_o that_o according_a to_o the_o nicen_n canon_n bishop_n when_o they_o be_v wrong_v may_v lawful_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n the_o other_o that_o after_o the_o put_n in_o of_o a_o appeal_v to_o he_o a_o general_a council_n ought_v to_o be_v call_v that_o to_o the_o great_a satisfaction_n of_o all_o part_n the_o cause_n may_v be_v full_o examine_v &_o reiudge_v by_o the_o common_a consent_n of_o the_o church_n which_o no_o more_o preiudicate_v the_o pope_n authority_n than_o it_o do_v the_o king_n that_o after_o a_o appeal_v make_v to_o majesty_n a_o parliament_n be_v call_v for_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o cause_n for_o as_o the_o king_n be_v head_n of_o the_o parliament_n so_o be_v the_o pope_n of_o a_o general_a council_n and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o little_a judgement_n you_o show_v in_o object_v the_o african_a council_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a deny_v appeal_n to_o rome_n both_o because_o yourself_o allege_v this_o testimony_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n out_o of_o s._n leo_n prove_v they_o to_o be_v lawful_a as_o also_o because_o the_o african_a council_n be_v whole_o against_o you_o as_o hereafter_o shall_v be_v prove_v 27._o prove_v below_o chap._n 27._o 4._o that_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a acknowledge_v the_o uninersall_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o socrates_n a_o greek_a historian_n of_o above_o 1200._o year_n stand_v who_o speak_v of_o the_o arian_n council_n at_o antioch_n 5._o antioch_n l._n 2._o c._n 5._o prove_v it_o to_o be_v unlawful_a because_o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o there_o nor_o send_v any_o in_o his_o steed_n although_o the_o acclesiasticall_a canon_n forbid_v to_o rule_v the_o church_n without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o sozomen_n 9_o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o julius_n reprehend_v they_o the_o arian_n that_o they_o have_v secret_o alter_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o that_o against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n they_o have_v not_o call_v the_o pope_n to_o their_o synod_n for_o there_o be_v a_o sacerdotal_a law_n which_o pronounce_v all_o thing_n to_o be_v invalide_v that_o be_v do_v without_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o theodoret_n 4._o theodoret_n l_o 2._o hist_o c._n 4._o julius_n bishop_n of_o rome_n follow_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n command_v they_o the_o arian_n bishop_n to_o come_v to_o rome_n and_o summon_v the_o divinâ_n athanasius_n to_o answer_n for_o himself_o in_o judgement_n and_o the_o same_o be_v report_v by_o nicephorus_n now_o this_o canon_n so_o uniform_o avouch_v by_o these_o greek_a historian_n which_o forbid_v bishop_n to_o be_v depose_v or_o any_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n to_o be_v make_v without_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n can_v be_v of_o no_o other_o then_o of_o the_o nicen_n council_n or_o else_o of_o that_o of_o sardica_n which_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o be_v repute_v as_o a_o appendix_n unto_o it_o both_o because_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v innocentius_n afflirm_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o have_v make_v such_o a_o law_n as_o also_o for_o that_o since_o the_o apostle_n time_n until_o the_o time_n of_o those_o two_o counsel_n there_o have_v be_v hold_v no_o other_o general_a council_n in_o the_o church_n and_o final_o because_o john_n that_o learned_a disputant_n of_o the_o latin_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n 20._o florence_n sess_n 20._o in_o their_o name_n answer_v marcus_n ephesius_n the_o disputant_n of_o the_o greek_n that_o the_o most_o ancient_a epistle_n of_o julius_n and_o liberius_n pope_n which_o julian_n cardinal_n of_o s._n sabina_n have_v show_v to_o the_o grecian_n in_o that_o council_n do_v convince_v that_o bless_a athanasius_n be_v persecute_v by_o the_o arian_n in_o their_o council_n at_o antioch_n write_v to_o felix_n marcus_n julius_n and_o liberius_n all_o of_o they_o successive_o pope_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o true_a copy_n of_o the_o act_n of_o nice_a which_o be_v keep_v entire_a and_o incorrupt_a at_o rome_n all_o those_o that_o be_v in_o the_o east_n be_v corrupt_v by_o the_o arian_n and_o that_o their_o answer_n be_v they_o will_v not_o send_v the_o original_a act_n which_o be_v write_v in_o greek_a and_o latin_a and_o subscribe_v by_o the_o nicen_n father_n and_o seal_v with_o their_o seal_n be_v keep_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n with_o great_a veneration_n but_o that_o they_o will_v send_v he_o copy_v out_o several_o such_o canon_n as_o be_v for_o his_o purpose_n and_o moreover_o he_o show_v that_o when_o athanasius_n have_v appeal_v from_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o that_o the_o arian_n object_v it_o unto_o he_o as_o a_o thing_n unlawful_a liberius_n promise_v to_o send_v he_o copy_v out_o the_o nicen_n decree_n for_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n and_o that_o julius_n in_o his_o epistle_n sharp_o rebuke_v the_o arian_n for_o have_v presume_v to_o call_v a_o council_n without_o his_o allowance_n show_v they_o out_o of_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a that_o no_o council_n can_v ever_o be_v hold_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o last_o pisanus_n 345.346_o pisanus_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 345.346_o in_o proof_n of_o these_o nicene_n decree_n produce_v the_o testimony_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n of_o marcus_n of_o stephanus_n and_o innocentius_n pope_n of_o athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n of_o other_o oriental_n of_o marianus_n scotus_n iuo_o carnotensis_n and_o gratianus_n all_o which_o with_o the_o rest_n here_o allege_v show_v your_o unshamefastnesse_n in_o urge_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n which_o be_v so_o
certain_o allow_v and_o decree_v by_o it_o 5._o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o be_v hold_v soon_o after_o that_o of_o nice_n make_v three_o decree_n concern_v appeal_v the_o first_o 3._o first_o cap._n 3._o that_o if_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n who_o conceive_v himself_o to_o be_v wrong_v a_o new_a judgement_n be_v require_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v to_o give_v the_o judge_n the_o second_o 4._o second_o cap._n 4._o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n say_v his_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v again_o none_o be_v to_o be_v install_v in_o his_o see_n until_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v pronounce_v upon_o it_o the_o three_o 5._o three_o cap._n 5._o that_o a_o bishop_n accuse_v may_v have_v recourse_n to_o rome_n by_o way_n of_o appeal_n these_o canon_n of_o sardica_n sufficient_o declare_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n touch_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o as_o harmen_n opulus_fw-la write_v can._n write_v in_o epit._n can._n by_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o synod_n if_o sardica_n be_v assemble_v consist_v of_o 341._o father_n which_o confirm_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o publish_v the_o canon_n wherefore_o these_o canon_n touch_v appeal_n extant_a in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v either_o the_o very_a nicen_n canon_n insert_v into_o that_o of_o sardica_n or_o declaration_n of_o they_o for_o the_o sardican_a council_n consist_v for_o the_o most_o part_n of_o the_o same_o bishop_n that_o the_o nicen_n do_v it_o be_v a_o senseless_a thing_n to_o say_v that_o when_o those_o bishop_n in_o their_o council_n at_o sardica_n so_o express_o and_o so_o effectual_o declare_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o bishop_n they_o profess_v a_o new_a doctrine_n contrary_a to_o that_o which_o a_o little_a before_o they_o have_v profess_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a 6._o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n be_v yet_o further_o declare_v in_o the_o nicen_n council_n decree_a thus_o arab._n thus_o can._n 39_o ex_fw-la 80._o graec._n &_o arab._n a_o patriarch_n be_v so_o over_o all_o those_o that_o be_v under_o his_o power_n as_o he_o that_o have_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n be_v head_n and_o prince_n of_o all_o patriarch_n for_o he_o be_v the_o chief_a as_o peter_n be_v to_o who_o power_n be_v give_v over_o all_o christian_a prince_n and_o all_o their_o subject_n as_o be_v the_o vicar_n of_o our_o lord_n over_o all_o people_n and_o over_o the_o univer_n shall_fw-mi church_n 7._o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o order_n of_o subscribe_v in_o the_o council_n for_o victor_n and_o vincentius_n be_v not_o bishop_n but_o simple_a priest_n because_o they_o be_v legate_n to_o the_o pope_n preside_v in_o the_o council_n together_o with_o osius_n b._n of_o corduba_n and_o subscribe_v in_o the_o first_o place_n before_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n which_o they_o can_v not_o have_v do_v but_o only_o in_o regard_n they_o represent_v his_o person_n who_o be_v superior_a to_o all_o bishop_n and_o patriarch_n 8._o though_o constantine_n the_o emperor_n be_v a_o great_a cause_n of_o the_o bishop_n meeting_n in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a both_o because_o he_o persuade_v that_o mean_n of_o concord_n as_o also_o because_o he_o defray_v their_o charge_n and_o by_o his_o letter_n call_v they_o together_o yet_o he_o call_v they_o not_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n but_o as_o ruffinus_n say_v 5._o say_v l._n 1._o c._n 1._o fin_n apud_fw-la spond_n anno_fw-la 325._o n._n 5._o ex_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la sententia_fw-la by_o the_o determination_n or_o decree_n of_o the_o priest_n as_o in_o like_a manner_n he_o call_v a_o other_o council_n of_o 275_o bishop_n at_o rome_n at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o which_o it_o be_v say_v silvester_n gather_v the_o whole_a council_n with_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o damasus_n in_o syluester_v life_n and_o by_o the_o sixth_o general_a council_n say_v 18._o say_v act._n 18._o constantine_n and_o sylvester_n worthy_a of_o praise_n call_v the_o famous_a council_n of_o nice_a and_o how_o can_v it_o be_v think_v that_o it_o be_v call_v by_o any_o other_o authority_n then_o of_o the_o pope_n see_v s._n athanasius_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n in_o their_o council_n at_o alexandria_n witness_n felic_n witness_n ep._n synod_n ad_fw-la felic_n that_o the_o nicen_n council_n make_v a_o decree_n that_o no_o general_a counsel_n shall_v be_v hold_v without_o the_o allowance_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o this_o decree_n it_o be_v which_o julius_n pope_n the_o next_o but_o one_o to_o sylvester_n allege_v against_o the_o arian_n orientales_fw-la arian_n ep._n ad_fw-la orientales_fw-la rebuke_v they_o sharp_o that_o they_o have_v infringe_v it_o by_o call_v their_o council_n at_o antioch_n without_o his_o allowance_n which_o be_v also_o testify_v by_o socrates_n sozomen_n and_o theodoret_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v 9_o and_o as_o this_o council_n be_v call_v by_o sylvester_n pope_n so_o that_o it_o require_v confirmation_n from_o he_o we_o be_v certify_v by_o the_o roman_a council_n under_o felix_n the_o three_o 3._o three_o in_o ep_v synod_n felic_n c._n 3._o and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a itself_o say_v nice_a say_v in_o sum_n conc._n nice_a placuit_fw-la etc._n etc._n it_o have_v seem_v good_a that_o all_o these_o act_n and_o decree_n be_v send_v to_o sylvester_n b._n of_o rome_n and_o in_o their_o letter_n to_o sylvester_n crescon_n sylvester_n apud_fw-la baron_n an._n 325._o ex_fw-la collect_v crescon_n whatsoever_o be_v determine_v in_o the_o nicen_n council_n we_o beseech_v you_o that_o it_o may_v be_v second_v with_o the_o confirmation_n of_o your_o mouth_n and_o that_o sylvester_n according_o confirm_v their_o decree_n we_o may_v learn_v from_o a_o council_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n hold_v at_o rome_n in_o which_o he_o preside_v say_v 382._o say_v apud_fw-la bar._n an._n 325._o &_o bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 382._o whatsoever_o be_v determine_v by_o the_o 318._o holy_a priest_n at_o nice_a in_o bithynia_n for_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n we_o with_o our_o mouth_n according_o confirm_v and_o all_o those_o that_o shall_v dare_v to_o dissolve_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o great_a council_n assemble_v at_o nice_a in_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a and_o venerable_a prince_n constantine_n the_o emperor_n we_o anathematise_v they_o and_o all_o answer_v so_o be_v it_o sect_n i._o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n against_o the_o precedent_a doctrine_n answer_v though_o you_o either_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o find_v any_o thing_n of_o all_o that_o which_o have_v be_v allege_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o proof_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n yet_o you_o can_v find_v two_o argument_n to_o object_n against_o it_o the_o first_o be_v seqq_fw-la be_v pag._n 105._o &_o seqq_fw-la the_o council_n of_o nice_a decreeth_n that_o the_o ancient_a custom_n go_v on_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v power_n over_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n because_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v so_o accustom_v to_o this_o argument_n bellarmine_n have_v answer_v 13._o answer_v l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 13._o that_o the_o canon_n speak_v of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n with_o restriction_n assign_v to_o he_o the_o province_n of_o egypt_n lybia_n and_o pentapolis_n and_o of_o the_o pope_n without_o restriction_n not_o prescribe_v any_o limit_n to_o his_o jurisdiction_n nor_o ordain_v any_o thing_n concern_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o make_v she_o a_o rule_n and_o pattern_n for_o the_o government_n of_o other_o church_n command_v that_o the_o b._n of_o alexandria_n have_v power_n over_o those_o three_o province_n because_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v accustom_v so_o to_o allow_v or_o permit_v and_o this_o canon_n be_v so_o explicate_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o imper_v first_o ep._n ad_fw-la michael_n imper_v that_o live_v almost_o 800._o year_n since_o and_o for_o his_o learning_n and_o sanctity_n have_v deserve_v the_o surname_n of_o great_a and_o the_o same_o explication_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o practice_n both_o of_o the_o roman_a and_o of_o the_o alexandrian_a church_n for_o if_o according_a to_o your_o construction_n the_o roman_a church_n by_o this_o canon_n be_v prove_v to_o have_v no_o superiority_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n of_o alexandria_n or_o other_o eastern_a church_n but_o only_o over_o those_o which_o be_v within_o the_o patriarkeship_n of_o the_o west_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o s._n athanasius_n patriarch_n
he_o send_v to_o the_o council_n instruction_n in_o writing_n what_o form_n they_o ought_v to_o observe_v in_o their_o judgement_n and_o final_o the_o council_n itself_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o pope_n preside_v in_o it_o you_o say_v they_o to_o leo_n leon._n leo_n in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n preside_v in_o this_o assembly_n as_o the_o head_n do_v to_o member_n exhibit_v your_o good_a will_n by_o those_o that_o hold_v your_o place_n and_o the_o faithful_a emperor_n preside_v for_o ornament_n sake_n and_o to_o see_v good_a order_n keep_v that_o be_v to_o hinder_v by_o his_o secular_a power_n such_o tumult_n and_o murder_n as_o have_v be_v late_o commit_v in_o the_o second_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n who_o see_v not_o that_o the_o whole_a council_n in_o these_o word_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o superior_a and_o themselves_o to_o be_v his_o subject_n since_o they_o profess_v that_o he_o rule_v over_o they_o at_o the_o head_n do_v over_o the_o member_n sect_n ii_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o leo_n pope_n depose_v eutyches_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o restore_v theodoret._n the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v yet_o further_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n for_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n have_v reckon_v up_o the_o enormity_n of_o eutyches_n request_v leo_n pope_n to_o confirm_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n which_o in_o a_o council_n at_o constantinople_n he_o have_v pronounce_v against_o he_o move_v then_o say_v he_o chalce_v he_o in_o ep_v praeambul_a council_n chalce_v most_o holy_a father_n with_o all_o these_o attempt_n of_o eutyches_n &_o with_o those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v do_v and_o be_v do_v against_o we_o and_o against_o the_o holy_a church_n work_v confident_o according_a to_o your_o courage_n as_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o priesthood_n and_o make_v the_o common_a cause_n and_o the_o discipline_n of_o the_o holy_a church_n your_o own_o vouchsafe_v to_o confirm_v by_o your_o writing_n the_o condemnation_n which_o have_v be_v regularty_a make_v against_o he_o leo_n according_a to_o this_o petition_n of_o flavianus_n condemn_v eutyches_n and_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o dignity_n dioscorus_n say_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n write_v to_o leo_n leon._n leo_n relat._n ad_fw-la leon._n by_o the_o decree_n of_o his_o tyranny_n have_v declare_v eutyches_n innocent_a and_o restore_v to_o he_o the_o dignity_n whereof_o he_o be_v deprive_v by_o your_o holiness_n what_o else_o be_v this_o but_o to_o say_v that_o albeit_o eutiche_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o flavianus_n his_o own_o bishop_n and_o lawful_a judge_n yet_o afterward_o when_o flavianus_n by_o eutyches_n his_o negotiation_n be_v depose_v in_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n and_o leo_n declare_v he_o innocent_a depose_v eutyches_n the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n embrace_v this_o sentence_n of_o leo_n and_o attribute_v to_o he_o the_o final_a deposition_n of_o eutyches_n as_o to_o the_o supreme_a judge_n that_o have_v power_n to_o reiudge_v the_o judgment_n of_o other_o bishop_n which_o power_n valentinian_n the_o three_o write_v to_o theodosius_n acknowledge_v and_o declare_v in_o this_o very_a cause_n of_o flavianus_n we_o ought_v say_v he_o chalced._n he_o in_o ep_v praeamb_n conc._n chalced._n to_o preserve_v inviolable_a in_o our_o day_n the_o dignity_n of_o particular_a reverence_n to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n that_o the_o holy_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o antiquity_n have_v attribute_v the_o priesthood_n above_o all_o may_v have_v place_n to_o judge_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o of_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n for_o therefore_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n flavianus_n appeal_v to_o he_o in_o the_o contention_n which_o be_v rise_v about_o point_n of_o faith_n the_o same_o power_n be_v like_o wise_a acknowledge_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o theodoret_n bishop_n of_o cyre_z who_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n appeal_v to_o leo_n and_o be_v restore_v by_o he_o and_o thereupon_o admit_v to_o take_v his_o place_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n let_v the_o right_n reverend_a bishop_n theodore_v come_v in_o say_v the_o emperor_n officer_n 1._o officer_n conc._n chalc._o act_n 1._o that_o he_o may_v have_v part_n in_o the_o synod_n because_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n leo_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o rishoprick_n and_o the_o most_o sacred_a and_o religious_a emperor_n have_v ordain_v that_o he_o assist_v in_o the_o holy_a council_n now_o that_o the_o emperor_n ordain_v not_o this_o as_o challenge_v any_o authority_n over_o bishop_n but_o only_o as_o one_o that_o by_o his_o officer_n assist_v at_o the_o council_n to_o execute_v the_o pope_n decree_n and_o to_o see_v peace_n and_o good_a order_n keep_v you_o have_v hear_v the_o council_n testify_v praece_v testify_v sect._n praece_v and_o he_o himself_o declare_v the_o same_o say_v to_o pope_n leo_n chalced._n leo_n in_o ep_v praeamb_n council_n chalced._n our_o desire_n be_v that_o peace_n be_v restore_v to_o the_o church_n by_o this_o council_n celebrate_v under_o your_o authority_n the_o authority_n than_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n not_o in_o the_o emperor_n and_o when_o the_o cause_n of_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n come_v to_o be_v examine_v the_o council_n inquire_v of_o the_o pope_n legate_n what_o charge_v they_o have_v against_o he_o lucentius_n one_o of_o they_o answer_v 18._o answer_v act._n 1._o &_o euagr._fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 18._o dioscorus_n must_v yield_v a_o account_n of_o his_o judgement_n because_o have_v no_o right_a to_o do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o judge_n he_o attempt_v it_o and_o presume_v to_o hold_v a_o synod_n without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a a_o thing_n which_o nether_a be_v nor_o cold_a ever_o lawful_o be_v do_v and_o paschasinus_n another_o of_o the_o legate_n 1._o legate_n act._n 1._o we_o have_v here_o the_o command_v of_o the_o bless_a and_o apostolic_a prelate_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n whereby_o his_o apostolate_a have_v vouchsafe_v to_o command_v that_o dioscorus_n archbishop_n of_o alexandria_n sit_v not_o in_o the_o council_n but_o yet_o that_o he_o be_v admit_v to_o be_v hear_v whereupon_o the_o council_n command_v he_o not_o to_o sit_v as_o a_o judge_n among_o the_o bishop_n but_o to_o stand_v in_o the_o midst_n as_o a_o person_n accuse_v to_o answer_n for_o himself_o 4._o himself_o euag._n l._n 2._o c._n 4._o and_o the_o council_n have_v hear_v his_o whole_a cause_n condemn_v he_o request_v the_o pope_n legate_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o he_o 3._o he_o act._n 3._o we_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n who_o have_v the_o place_n and_o primacy_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n leo_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n against_o he_o whereupon_o the_o legate_n paschasinus_n lucentius_n and_o bonifacius_n pronounce_v it_o in_o these_o word_n ibid._n word_n ibid._n therefore_o leo_n the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a rome_n have_v by_o we_o and_o by_o this_o present_a synod_n together_o with_o the_o thrice_o bless_a and_o worthy_a of_o all_o praise_n peter_n the_o apostle_n who_o be_v the_o rock_n and_o head_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o right_a faith_n depose_v dioscorus_n from_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o deprive_v he_o of_o all_o sacerdotal_a function_n to_o this_o sentence_n all_o the_o bishop_n subscribe_v and_o it_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o whereas_o many_o most_o enormous_a crime_n of_o dioscorus_n be_v there_o rehearse_v ibid._n rehearse_v ibid._n yet_o that_o which_o the_o council_n judge_v to_o exceed_v all_o the_o rest_n be_v that_o he_o have_v presume_v to_o pronounce_v a_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n against_o the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o great_a rome_n leo_n which_o enormity_n of_o his_o the_o whole_a council_n exaggerate_v to_o leo_n say_v leon._n say_v relat._n ad_fw-la leon._n and_o after_o and_o above_o all_o these_o thing_n he_o have_v extend_v his_o frenzy_n even_o against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o guard_n of_o the_o vine_n have_v be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o your_o apostolic_a holiness_n and_o have_v dictate_v a_o excommunication_n against_o you_o that_o seek_v to_o unite_v speedy_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n in_o which_o word_n the_o council_n plain_o profess_v that_o the_o custody_n and_o charge_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n signify_v under_o the_o name_n of_o a_o vine_n be_v give_v to_o the_o pope_n by_o our_o saviour_n and_o that_o he_o because_o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n labour_v to_o unite_v the_o body_n thereof_o which_o also_o they_o
from_o africa_n to_o rome_n for_o of_o they_o only_o the_o question_n be_v but_o instead_o of_o prove_v this_o you_o produce_v a_o canon_n in_o which_o even_o as_o it_o be_v report_v by_o yourself_o no_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o bishop_n but_o only_o a_o command_n give_v that_o priest_n deacon_n or_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n appeal_v not_o from_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n either_o to_o rome_n or_o to_o any_o other_o transmarine_a church_n which_o no_o more_o impeach_v the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o disprove_v his_o right_n of_o appeal_n out_o of_o africa_n than_o it_o will_v impeach_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n of_o france_n if_o to_o prevent_v the_o multitude_n of_o unnecessary_a suit_n and_o keep_v his_o people_n in_o awe_n of_o their_o immediate_a superior_n his_o majesty_n and_o his_o court_n of_o parliament_n with_o his_o assent_n shall_v provide_v by_o a_o special_a law_n that_o in_o minor_a cause_n no_o appeal_n be_v make_v from_o they_o to_o himself_o to_o this_o i_o add_v that_o innocentius_n confirm_v this_o council_n of_o milevis_n 93._o milevis_n aug._n ep_v 93._o which_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v if_o it_o have_v prohibit_v the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o his_o see_n which_o he_o himself_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o victricius_n claim_v and_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o be_v lawful_a and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n and_o speak_v of_o cecilian_a archbishop_n of_o carthage_n that_o have_v be_v injust_o condemn_v by_o the_o donatist_n in_o a_o council_n of_o 70._o bishop_n faith_n 162._o faith_n ep._n 162._o cecilian_n may_v have_v contemn_v the_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n conspire_v against_o he_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o know_v himself_o to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o principality_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o that_o he_o may_v have_v reserve_v his_o cause_n entire_a to_o be_v judge_v a_o new_a there_o because_o it_o be_v not_o a_o cause_n of_o priest_n or_o deacon_n or_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n but_o of_o a_o colleague_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o a_o bishop_n this_o discourse_n of_o s._n augustine_n convince_v that_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v to_o rome_n though_o priest_n and_o other_o inferior_a clerk_n may_v not_o how_o come_v it_o then_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o say_v 323._o say_v pag._n 323._o bellarmine_n when_o he_o say_v that_o s._n augustine_n in_o the_o place_n allege_v do_v justify_v appeal_n of_o bishop_n beyond_o the_o sea_n to_o rome_n speak_v so_o still_o as_o though_o be_v be_v scarce_o able_a to_o report_v a_o truth_n bellarmine_n may_v indeed_o with_o truth_n tell_v you_o that_o when_o you_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n the_o case_n of_o cecilian_a which_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o be_v not_o a_o case_n of_o appeal_n but_o of_o delegation_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o emperor_n to_o the_o pope_n and_o to_o other_o bishop_n you_o speak_v as_o one_o that_o be_v scarce_o able_a to_o report_v any_o thing_n out_o of_o he_o without_o a_o untruth_n for_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o what_o pass_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la in_o the_o case_n of_o cecilian_a but_o of_o the_o right_a that_o cecilian_a have_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o right_a s._n augustine_n can_v not_o have_v allege_v unless_o he_o have_v believe_v that_o bishop_n in_o their_o wrong_n may_v lawful_o appeal_v to_o he_o and_o that_o the_o case_n of_o cecilian_a be_v not_o a_o case_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o a_o delegation_n from_o the_o emperor_n be_v a_o untruth_n that_o shall_v be_v confute_v hereafter_o â_o hereafter_o chap._n 30._o sect_n â_o from_o hence_o bellarmine_n collect_v that_o albeit_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n prohibit_v the_o appeal_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n to_o rome_n yet_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v prohibit_v the_o pope_n to_o admit_v of_o such_o appeal_n if_o they_o be_v make_v against_o this_o you_o reply_v 322._o reply_v pag._n 322._o that_o where_o there_o lie_v a_o prohibition_n against_o appeal_n to_o a_o judge_n that_o judge_n be_v not_o hold_v a_o superior_a judge_n false_a if_o it_o be_v take_v universal_o without_o limitation_n for_o a_o prohibition_n may_v be_v injust_a as_o be_v make_v without_o sufficient_a authority_n such_o be_v the_o prohibition_n of_o protestant_n forbid_v all_o appeal_v to_o rome_n again_o a_o prohibition_n may_v be_v make_v with_o dependence_n on_o the_o will_n and_o confirmation_n of_o a_o superior_a to_o who_o the_o right_a of_o appeal_n belong_v such_o be_v the_o prohibition_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n which_o therefore_o without_o the_o pope_n confirmation_n be_v invalid_a and_o be_v not_o valid_a further_a than_o he_o confirm_v it_o wherefore_o though_o by_o confirm_v it_o he_o do_v authorise_v the_o african_a bishop_n to_o impose_v on_o their_o priest_n &_o other_o clerk_n a_o command_n of_o not_o appeal_n to_o rome_n yet_o by_o grant_v they_o that_o authority_n he_o can_v be_v think_v to_o renounce_v his_o own_o right_a so_o far_o as_o that_o if_o a_o priest_n appeal_v unto_o he_o he_o may_v not_o admit_v his_o appeal_n when_o he_o shall_v find_v it_o expedient_a as_o it_o may_v be_v in_o case_n the_o priest_n or_o clerk_n can_v make_v evidence_n of_o his_o innocency_n prove_v by_o sufficient_a witness_n that_o he_o have_v be_v injust_o condemn_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o his_o own_o province_n out_o of_o misinformation_n or_o other_o motive_n chap._n xxvii_o appeal_v to_o rome_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o african_a council_n which_o be_v the_o six_o of_o carthage_n sect_n i._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n apiarius_n a_o african_a priest_n of_o the_o city_n of_o sicca_n be_v of_o a_o lewd_a &_o scandalous_a life_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o vrbanus_n b._n of_o the_o same_o city_n he_o travel_v twice_o to_o rome_n and_o make_v his_o complaint_n to_o zozimus_n pope_n appeal_v to_o his_o judgement_n zozimus_n send_v he_o back_o into_o africa_n wish_v the_o african_a bishop_n to_o examine_v his_o cause_n diligent_o and_o for_o as_o much_o as_o not_o only_a apiarius_n but_o as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o two_o epistle_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n to_o boniface_n and_o celestine_n successor_n to_o zozimus_n some_o bishop_n also_o have_v appeal_v unto_o he_o out_o of_o africa_n and_o the_o african_a bishop_n complain_v thereof_o he_o send_v unto_o they_o three_o legate_n faustinus_n b._n of_o potentia_n philip_n and_o asellus_n priest_n and_o with_o they_o the_o canon_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a concern_v appeal_n to_o rome_n the_o african_n not_o find_v those_o canon_n in_o their_o copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n send_v deputy_n into_o the_o east_n to_o procure_v authentical_a copy_n from_o cyril_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o atticus_n of_o constantinople_n but_o when_o they_o come_v their_o copy_n be_v find_v to_o contain_v no_o more_o than_o 20._o which_o be_v the_o number_n exstant_fw-la in_o our_o latin_a edition_n and_o in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n this_o objection_n have_v be_v often_o urge_v by_o protestant_n and_o as_o often_o answer_v by_o we_o and_o particular_o by_o the_o most_o eminent_a cardinal_n baronius_n 419._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 419._o bellarmine_n 25._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pontif._n c._n 25._o and_o peron_n 49._o peron_n repliq._n l._n 1._o chap._n 49._o in_o they_o you_o may_v read_v the_o solution_n it_o will_v be_v sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o give_v the_o reader_n out_o of_o they_o and_o other_o author_n a_o touch_n of_o your_o unsyncere_a deal_n whereby_o he_o may_v also_o come_v to_o understand_v what_o the_o issue_n of_o this_o controversy_n be_v first_o therefore_o bellarmine_n peron_n cit_fw-la peron_n loc._n cit_fw-la and_o brereley_o 3._o brereley_o prot._n apol_n tract_n 1._o sect_n 7._o subdiu_fw-la 2._o n._n 3._o show_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o african_n themselves_o who_o this_o matter_n most_o concern_v high_o commend_v those_o three_o pope_n zozimus_n boniface_n and_o celestine_n with_o who_o this_o controversy_n be_v and_o grace_v they_o with_o title_n of_o great_a reverence_n &_o honour_n call_v zozimus_n the_o most_o bless_a pope_n zozimus_n zozimus_fw-la of_o venerable_a memory_n that_o they_o call_v boniface_n the_o venerable_a bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n the_o holy_a and_o bless_a pope_n the_o reverend_a pope_n boniface_n boniface_n of_o holy_a memory_n the_o most_o bless_a and_o our_o honourable_a brother_n boniface_n and_o that_o s._n augustine_n dedicate_v to_o he_o one_o of_o his_o principal_a work_n and_o
father_n in_o the_o end_n descend_v to_o a_o flat_a and_o peremptory_a resolution_n in_o opposition_n of_o the_o papal_a claim_n of_o appeal_n this_o be_v a_o flat_a and_o peremptory_a untruth_n for_o the_o african_n never_o contest_v with_o the_o pope_n about_o appeal_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o refer_v they_o to_o he_o as_o appeareth_z out_o of_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n which_o send_v their_o decree_n of_o faith_n to_o innocentius_n pope_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n 26._o authority_n see_v above_o chap._n 26._o their_o contestation_n be_v about_o appeal_v of_o the_o inferior_a clergy_n in_o civil_a and_o criminal_a cause_n of_o they_o they_o write_v to_o zozimus_n pope_n but_o he_o be_v dead_a before_o the_o arrival_n of_o their_o letter_n they_o write_v again_o to_o boniface_n his_o successor_n acknowledge_v that_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o he_o mandata_fw-la &_o literas_fw-la commandment_n and_o letter_n which_o what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o profess_v he_o to_o be_v their_o superior_a and_o withal_o they_o represent_v to_o boniface_n the_o great_a trouble_n which_o the_o late_a appeal_n out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n have_v bring_v upon_o they_o &_o that_o therefore_o great_a caution_n ought_v to_o be_v use_v lest_o other_o such_o or_o worse_o shall_v happen_v and_o because_o they_o have_v not_o find_v in_o their_o copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n those_o canon_n concern_v appeal_n which_o zozimus_n have_v send_v in_o the_o instruction_n of_o his_o legate_n they_o require_v time_n to_o send_v into_o the_o east_n for_o authentical_a copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n canon_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n they_o observe_v the_o commandment_n of_o zozimus_n restore_v apiarius_n to_o the_o communion_n &_o to_o his_o priesthood_n apiarius_n say_v they_o to_o boniface_n bonifac._n boniface_n ep_v ad_fw-la bonifac._n crave_v pardon_n have_v be_v restore_v to_o the_o communion_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n it_o have_v please_v we_o that_o apiarius_n shall_v retire_v from_o the_o church_n of_o sicca_n retain_v the_o honour_n of_o his_o degree_n and_o in_o their_o epistle_n to_o celestine_n apiarius_n have_v be_v former_o restore_v to_o his_o priesthood_n nor_o do_v they_o show_v their_o obedience_n only_o in_o restore_v apiarus_n but_o moreover_o in_o attend_v the_o come_n of_o the_o eastern_a copy_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n they_o promise_v with_o great_a humility_n and_o with_o all_o respect_n protest_v to_o observe_v from_o point_n to_o point_n all_o that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n for_o daniel_n notary_n of_o the_o council_n have_v read_v the_o first_o article_n which_o be_v that_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n alipius_n say_v 4._o say_v conc._n afric_n c._n 4._o we_o protest_v to_o observe_v these_o thing_n until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o perfect_a copy_n and_o the_o second_o article_n be_v read_v which_o be_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v to_o be_v final_o determine_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n s._n augustine_n say_v 7._o say_v ibid._n c._n 7._o we_o protest_v also_o to_o observe_v this_o article_n save_v a_o more_o diligent_a inquiry_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o whole_a council_n speak_v of_o both_o these_o article_n to_o boniface_n pope_n say_v bonif._n say_v cap._n 101._o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la bonif._n these_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o foresaid_a instruction_n have_v be_v allege_v unto_o we_o of_o the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o the_o cause_n of_o clerk_n to_o be_v end_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n we_o protest_v to_o observe_v until_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o we_o trust_v in_o the_o will_n of_o god_n that_o your_o holiness_n also_o will_v help_v we_o in_o it_o by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n send_v by_o zozimus_n be_v admit_v and_o the_o practice_n of_o they_o in_o africa_n allow_v by_o the_o whole_a council_n until_o the_o come_n of_o the_o nicen_n copy_n out_o of_o the_o east_n which_o show_v that_o their_o contestation_n be_v not_o about_o the_o pope_n right_a of_o appeal_n else_o they_o will_v have_v forbid_v they_o absolute_o even_o in_o that_o interim_n but_o about_o the_o expediency_n of_o they_o and_o the_o manner_n of_o prosecute_a they_o by_o legate_n and_o executor_n send_v from_o rome_n which_o be_v yet_o further_o confirm_v by_o these_o their_o word_n to_o pope_n celestine_n celest._n celestine_n ep._n ad_fw-la celest._n wherefore_o premise_v the_o office_n of_o due_a salutation_n we_o beseech_v you_o affectionate_o that_o hereafter_o you_o will_v not_o so_o easy_o admit_v to_o your_o ear_n those_o that_o come_v from_o these_o part_n nor_o vestore_v to_o the_o communion_n such_o as_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o us._n and_o a_o little_a after_o to_o the_o end_n that_o they_o who_o in_o their_o own_o province_n have_v be_v deprive_v of_o the_o communion_n may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v hasty_o and_o otherwise_o then_o be_v fit_a restore_v to_o the_o communion_n by_o your_o holiness_n these_o word_n be_v another_o remonstrance_n of_o their_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n over_o they_o and_o of_o their_o subjection_n to_o he_o for_o they_o say_v not_o to_o celestine_n that_o he_o have_v not_o authority_n to_o restore_v the_o communion_n to_o those_o that_o have_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o they_o but_o humble_o beseech_v he_o not_o to_o do_v it_o easy_o and_o without_o mature_a deliberation_n but_o rather_o that_o he_o will_v send_v they_o back_o into_o africa_n to_o be_v judge_v upon_o the_o place_n where_o their_o cause_n may_v be_v discuss_v more_o exact_o and_o the_o truth_n more_o certain_o know_v by_o the_o attestation_n of_o witness_n which_o can_v not_o without_o much_o difficulty_n and_o charge_n pass_v to_o rome_n and_o whereas_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 7._o sardica_n can._n 7._o have_v decree_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o the_o pope_n esteem_n be_v just_a that_o the_o examination_n of_o his_o cause_n be_v renown_a it_o shall_v be_v in_o the_o pope_n power_n if_o he_o please_v to_o send_v legate_n from_o rome_n to_o join_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n from_o who_o the_o appeal_n be_v make_v that_o by_o they_o the_o cause_n may_v be_v try_v and_o judge_v a_o new_a the_o african_n deny_v not_o this_o power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n nor_o any_o way_n except_v against_o the_o send_n back_o of_o the_o appellant_n into_o africa_n to_o have_v their_o cause_n try_v again_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n but_o only_o beseech_v he_o that_o he_o will_v be_v please_v not_o to_o send_v legate_n who_o by_o prosecute_a the_o cause_n of_o appellant_n too_o violent_o do_v sometime_o give_v occasion_n of_o complaint_n wherefore_o beseech_v pope_n celestine_n they_o say_v 107_o say_v conc._n afric_n c._n 107_o that_o you_o will_v not_o send_v your_o clerk_n executor_n to_o all_o that_o demand_v they_o nor_o permit_v that_o we_o may_v seem_v to_o introduce_v the_o smoky_a pride_n of_o the_o world_n into_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n which_o propound_v the_o light_n of_o simplicity_n and_o the_o day_n of_o humility_n to_o they_o that_o desire_v to_o see_v god_n the_o motive_n which_o the_o african_n have_v to_o make_v this_o petition_n be_v the_o insolent_a carriage_n of_o antony_n b._n of_o fussala_n in_o numidia_n who_o as_o s._n augustine_n report_v 261._o report_v ep._n 261._o for_o his_o enormous_a crime_n be_v deprive_v of_o his_o bishopric_n by_o procurement_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o fussala_n and_o leave_v with_o the_o bare_a title_n of_o bishop_n fraudulent_o get_v testimonial_a letter_n of_o his_o innocency_n from_o the_o primate_n of_o numidia_n at_o the_o very_a time_n of_o this_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o appeal_v to_o boniface_n pope_n who_o answer_v with_o great_a caution_n that_o he_o shall_v be_v restore_v si_fw-la nulla_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la narratione_fw-la surreptio_fw-la intercessisset_fw-la if_o there_o be_v no_o surreption_n in_o the_o relation_n of_o his_o cause_n boniface_n die_v and_o celestine_n succeed_v they_o of_o fussala_n prosecute_v their_o suit_n earnest_o against_o he_o and_o he_o contrary_o threaten_v that_o celestine_n will_v send_v clerk_n executor_n and_o if_o need_n be_v soldier_n to_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n he_o threaten_v they_o say_v s._n augustine_n ibid._n augustine_n ibid._n with_o secular_a power_n as_o if_o they_o be_v to_o come_v to_o execute_v the_o judgment_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o that_o the_o miserable_a inhabitant_n be_v christian_n and_o catholic_n fear_v more_o grievous_a usage_n from_o a_o
bishop_n and_o pastor_n as_o not_o be_v true_a pope_n and_o cleave_v to_o one_o opposite_a unto_o he_o man_n die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o this_o disobedience_n can_v possible_o be_v true_a martyr_n nor_o be_v save_v three_o there_o be_v disobedience_n moral_a in_o matter_n of_o good_a life_n &_o manner_n against_o precept_n enact_v by_o the_o church_n for_o the_o better_a avoid_n &_o punish_v of_o ill_a behaviour_n now_o in_o the_o state_n of_o this_o kind_n of_o disobedience_n man_n may_v be_v save_v for_o the_o disobey_v of_o these_o kind_n of_o order_n and_o command_n may_v proceed_v either_o from_o contumacy_n and_o contempt_n or_o from_o error_n and_o ignorance_n if_o out_o of_o contempt_n then_o be_v it_o damnable_a so_o that_o none_o die_v therein_o can_v be_v martyr_n or_o go_v to_o heaven_n but_o with_o disobedience_n of_o the_o second_o kind_n cause_v by_o ignorance_n salvation_n and_o martyrdom_n may_v stand_v for_o their_o ignorance_n may_v be_v invincible_a or_o else_o probable_a and_o ground_v upon_o good_a seem_a reason_n or_o if_o it_o be_v vincible_a and_o faulty_a yet_o may_v it_o be_v abolish_v by_o their_o contrition_n for_o all_o their_o sin_n or_o falce_fw-la martyrij_fw-la by_o the_o sickle_n of_o martyrdom_n do_v away_o this_o suppose_a i_o say_v the_o disobedience_n of_o the_o african_a bishop_n be_v not_o heretical_a because_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o say_v they_o be_v conform_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o by_o manifold_a practice_n show_v that_o about_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n of_o this_o kind_n they_o hold_v it_o necessary_a to_o have_v recourse_n to_o august_n to_o ep._n council_n milevit_fw-la 92._o inter_fw-la epist_n august_n the_o pastoral_n chair_n and_o care_v of_o peter_n to_o the_o 8._o the_o cypr._n l._n 2._o ep._n 10._o l._n 4._o ep_n 8._o root_n and_o matrice_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o the_o rock_n which_o the_o donat._n the_o august_n psal_n count_v part_n donat._n proud_a gate_n of_o hell_n do_v never_o overcome_v to_o the_o main_a indeficient_a fountain_n which_o with_o the_o stream_n of_o wholesome_a doctrine_n water_v all_o christian_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o ancient_a rule_n say_v they_o the_o four_o primate_fw-la of_o africa_n 1075._o africa_n ep._n ad_fw-la theodor._n papam_fw-la extat_fw-la in_o council_n lateran_n 1._o consult_v 2._o bin._n to_o 2._o p._n 1075._o have_v ordain_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v treat_v in_o province_n distant_a and_o far_o of_o shall_v not_o be_v deem_v to_o be_v end_v until_o first_o it_o be_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o the_o en_fw-fr that_o the_o sentente_n which_o shall_v be_v find_v just_a may_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o see_v and_o that_o from_o thence_o all_o other_o church_n as_o stream_n flow_v from_o their_o mother_n source_n may_v take_v the_o beginning_n of_o their_o preach_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o salvation_n their_o disobedience_n then_o can_v not_o be_v heretical_a nor_o be_v it_o schismatical_a because_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n even_o that_o pope_n with_o who_o they_o do_v disagree_v to_o be_v their_o pastor_n and_o superior_n who_o necessitas_fw-la who_o august_n epist._n 157._o iniuncta_fw-la nobis_fw-la à _fw-la venerabili_fw-la papa_n zozimo_n ecclesiastica_fw-la necessitas_fw-la lawful_a command_v they_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v &_o that_o all_o mayor_n cause_n all_o matter_n &_o controversy_n above_o jurisdiction_n of_o great_a moment_n to_o wit_n such_o as_o concern_v say_v and_o the_o life_n and_o government_n of_o bishop_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v unto_o he_o and_o to_o be_v final_o and_o infallible_o decide_v by_o he_o neither_o three_o be_v their_o disobedience_n join_v with_o contumacy_n and_o contempt_n because_o though_o they_o refuse_v to_o defer_v unto_o the_o appeal_v which_o priest_n &_o infertour_n clergyman_n may_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n yet_o they_o do_v it_o with_o great_a humility_n and_o respect_n and_o by_o way_n of_o submissive_a entreaty_n in_o their_o 520._o their_o ep._n ad_fw-la caelestin_n apud_fw-la sur._n tom._n l._n coucil_n pag._n 520._o letter_n to_o pope_n celeftine_n praefato_fw-la debitae_fw-la salutationis_fw-la officio_fw-la impendio_fw-la deprecamur_fw-la ut_fw-la deinceps_fw-la ad_fw-la aures_fw-la vestrashinc_fw-la venientes_fw-la non_fw-la facilius_fw-la admittatis_fw-la the_o behoof_n of_o due_a salutation_n or_o reverence_n be_v premise_v we_o humble_o beseech_v you_o that_o those_o which_o come_v from_o hence_o with_o their_o appeal_v you_o will_v not_o admit_v they_o unto_o audience_n over-easy_o therefore_o their_o disobedience_n be_v out_o of_o ignorance_n for_o they_o do_v not_o doubt_n but_o the_o pope_n have_v power_n to_o command_v the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n to_o yield_v unto_o the_o appeal_v that_o be_v make_v unto_o he_o but_o they_o esteem_v the_o practice_n of_o that_o power_n not_o to_o be_v in_o those_o circumstance_n for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n of_o africa_n they_o see_v by_o appeal_n to_o rome_n that_o dissolute_a and_o unruly_a clergyman_n will_v cause_v much_o vexation_n unto_o the_o bishop_n their_o lawful_a judge_n prolong_v the_o cause_n differre_fw-la the_o sentence_n and_o many_o time_n escape_v deserve_v punishment_n which_o impunity_n may_v easy_o grow_v into_o liberty_n and_o audacity_n and_o extreme_a disorder_n wherefore_o the_o power_n give_v of_o christ_n to_o his_o church_n and_o vicar_n on_o earth_n be_v give_v 10_o give_v â_o cor._n 1â_n 10_o for_o edify_v not_o for_o destroy_v they_o be_v persuade_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v not_o prudent_o command_v they_o to_o defer_v unto_o such_o appeal_v and_o if_o he_o do_v that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v therein_o you_o demand_v 150â_n demand_v pag._n 150â_n whether_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o we_o entitle_v monarch_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_a and_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n will_v accept_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o subjection_n for_o protestant_n with_o s._n augustine_n and_o those_o other_o african_a bishop_n to_o deny_v that_o any_o aught_o to_o be_v call_v bishop_n of_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o yield_v to_o his_o demand_n in_o point_n of_o jurisdiction_n upon_o any_o pretence_n of_o divine_a law_n but_o to_o exact_v of_o he_o proof_n by_o a_o canon_n of_o a_o ancient_a council_n i_o answer_v the_o african_a bishop_n deny_v the_o title_n of_o prince_n of_o bishop_n to_o any_o archbishop_n or_o primate_n within_o africa_n but_o not_o to_o the_o roman_a bishop_n yea_o they_o entitle_v he_o in_o express_a term_n damasum_fw-la term_n aruob_n in_o psal_n 138._o tertullian_n lib._n de_fw-fr pudicit_fw-la c._n 1._o stephanus_n mauritaniae_n in_o africa_n episcopus_fw-la epist._n ad_fw-la damasum_fw-la bishop_n of_o bishop_n the_o holy_a father_n of_o father_n the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o all_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n they_o call_v his_o authority_n the_o princedom_n of_o the_o apostolic_a chair_n ever_o vigent_fw-la in_o the_o roman_a church_n they_o acknowledge_v that_o they_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v all_o his_o just_a command_n that_o all_o christian_n may_v and_o must_v appeal_v to_o he_o about_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o catholic_a faith_n carthage_n august_n ep_v 1â2_n a_o postolitae_fw-la cathedrae_fw-la principatum_fw-la item_n the_o four_o primate_fw-la of_o africa_n in_o their_o synodical_a epistle_n to_o pope_n theodor_n in_o conc._n lateran_n 1._o consul_n 2._o bintom_n 2_o pag._n 1078._o patri_fw-la patrum_fw-la &_o summo_fw-la omnium_fw-la praesulum_fw-la pontifici_fw-la theodoro_n by_o which_o be_v answer_v what_o you_o allege_v pag._n 46._o out_o of_o the_o 26._o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n yea_o bishop_n also_o in_o criminal_a cause_n from_o the_o condemnation_n give_v against_o they_o by_o their_o fellow-bishop_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n shall_v admit_v the_o appeal_v so_o easy_o of_o every_o african_a priest_n and_o clergyman_n hereof_o they_o doubt_v whether_o it_o be_v expedient_a for_o the_o african_a church_n now_o bishop_n may_v be_v sometime_o excuse_v if_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v the_o pope_n in_o matter_n that_o be_v extreme_o burdensome_a and_o hard_a special_o when_o they_o have_v probable_a reason_n that_o it_o be_v not_o prudent_o command_v nor_o will_v prove_v for_o the_o good_a of_o soul_n but_o protestant_n you_o be_v disobedient_a unto_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n and_o the_o sovereign_a bishop_n of_o all_o bishop_n in_o point_n of_o jurisdiction_n allow_v unto_o he_o by_o ancient_a counsel_n your_o disobedience_n be_v join_v with_o contumacy_n contempt_n contumely_n and_o base_a language_n you_o deny_v appeal_v unto_o he_o in_o matter_n and_o doubt_n about_o christian_a faith_n wherefore_o you_o want_v that_o dutiful_a subjection_n to_o peter_n chair_n without_o which_o none_o can_v be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o christ_n his_o sheep_n nor_o consequent_o be_v save_v yea_o you_o be_v guilty_a of_o that_o damnable_a disobedience_n whereof_o s._n leo_n say_v 2._o say_v epist_n 93._o c._n
themselves_o be_v absent_a these_o testimony_n of_o your_o own_o brethren_n be_v so_o many_o sharp_a wedge_n in_o the_o hart_n of_o your_o cause_n and_o show_v in_o you_o either_o ignorance_n or_o lack_v of_o conscience_n in_o deny_v so_o manifest_a a_o truth_n nor_o do_v your_o writer_n testify_v this_o of_o those_o pope_n in_o general_a but_o in_o particular_a even_o of_o those_o very_a twelve_o who_o testimony_n you_o here_o seek_v to_o elude_v of_o julius_n who_o you_o 2841_o you_o pag._n 2841_o call_v the_o first_o man_n of_o the_o inquest_n they_o say_v 60.61_o say_v brerel_n ibid._n n._n 60.61_o that_o whereas_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n decree_v that_o no_o council_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v without_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n julius_n make_v challenge_v thereby_o for_o which_o danaeus_n reprove_v he_o and_o other_o bishop_n of_o rome_n m._n cartwright_n and_o the_o centurist_n say_v of_o he_o 63._o he_o ibid_fw-la n._n 63._o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n he_o overreach_v in_o claim_v the_o hear_n of_o cause_n that_o apperteyn_v not_o to_o he_o and_o m._n symonds_n 64._o symonds_n ibid._n n._n 64._o that_o he_o decree_v that_o whosoever_o suspect_v his_o judge_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n and_o whereas_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n extant_a in_o the_o second_o apology_n of_o s._n athanasius_n he_o express_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n over_o all_o other_o in_o these_o word_n a_o ignoratis_fw-la etc._n etc._n be_v you_o ignorant_a that_o the_o custom_n be_v we_o shall_v be_v first_o write_v unto_o and_o that_o from_o hence_o the_o just_a decision_n of_o thing_n shall_v proceed_v and_o that_o if_o any_o suspicion_n be_v conceive_v against_o your_o bishop_n there_o you_o shall_v have_v write_v to_o this_o church_n for_o the_o thing_n which_o i_o signify_v to_o you_o we_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o bless_a peter_n you_o answer_v 184._o answer_v pag._n 184._o julius_n plain_o speak_v of_o document_n and_o instruction_n receive_v from_o peter_n not_o of_o dominton_a or_o jurisdiction_n which_o may_v be_v a_o answer_n to_o many_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o this_o answer_n be_v refute_v not_o only_o by_o the_o ancient_a historian_n as_o afterward_o you_o shall_v hear_v but_o also_o by_o the_o centurist_n who_o set_v down_o these_o very_a word_n of_o julius_n 746._o julius_n cent._n 4._o col_fw-fr 746._o and_o 529._o and_o col._n 529._o reprehend_v he_o for_o they_o and_o out_o of_o that_o his_o epistle_n show_v that_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n he_o summon_v the_o eastern_a bishop_n command_v they_o to_o come_v to_o rome_n assign_v they_o a_o day_n of_o appearance_n before_o he_o to_o be_v judge_v and_o have_v hear_v the_o whole_a cause_n give_v sentence_n rebuke_v the_o eusebian_n and_o by_o the_o preregative_a of_o his_o see_n restore_v the_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o they_o the_o same_o epistle_n be_v allege_v by_o d._n philippus_n nicolai_n 149._o nicolai_n de_fw-fr reg_fw-la christ._n l._n 2._o pag._n 149._o a_o learned_a protestant_n who_o out_o of_o socrates_n sozomen_n and_o the_o epistle_n itself_o witness_v that_o julius_n do_v more_o than_o once_o declare_v himself_o alone_o by_o especial_a privilege_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o primary_n see_v and_o that_o by_o divine_a ordinance_n the_o right_a of_o call_v counsel_n and_o of_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n and_o other_o weighty_a affair_n of_o that_o nature_n belong_v to_o he_o alone_o i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o julius_n speak_v not_o of_o document_n and_o instruction_n receive_v from_o peter_n but_o of_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n not_o unlike_a to_o this_o answer_n be_v your_o affirm_v 285._o affirm_v pag._n 284._o fin_n 285._o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n challenge_v julius_n for_o write_v to_o they_o alone_o &_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o challenge_n in_o their_o epistle_n 401._o epistle_n extat_fw-la ep._n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 401._o yea_o as_o sozomen_n 7._o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o testify_v and_o the_o beginning_n of_o the_o epistle_n itself_o show_v in_o it_o they_o profess_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n though_o otherwise_o false_o object_v to_o julius_n the_o breach_n of_o the_o canon_n a_o thing_n not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o for_o they_o that_o write_v be_v arian_n &_o in_o hatred_n of_o he_o because_o he_o have_v annul_v their_o council_n of_o antioch_n and_o restore_v athanasius_n and_o as_o the_o epistle_n be_v write_v by_o arian_n so_o it_o be_v also_o report_v by_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n from_o sabinus_n a_o macedonian_a heretic_n who_o take_v part_n with_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o against_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a to_o which_o as_o also_o to_o athanasius_n and_o to_o the_o bless_a trinity_n itself_o he_o be_v a_o profess_a enemy_n in_o regard_v whereof_o their_o epistle_n be_v of_o no_o more_o weight_n then_o if_o lutheran_n or_o caluinist_n shall_v now_o write_v the_o like_a and_o hereby_o it_o appear_v how_o untrue_o you_o say_v 185._o say_v pag._n 185._o that_o some_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a holy_a pope_n express_v the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v may_v be_v confute_v and_o indeed_o confound_v by_o as_o ancient_a opposision_n of_o the_o orientall_n against_o pope_n julius_n etc._n etc._n for_o those_o orientall_n be_v heretic_n have_v thus_o shift_v off_o the_o testimony_n of_o julius_n who_o you_o call_v the_o first_o man_n of_o the_o inquest_n you_o pass_v immediate_o to_o s._n gregory_n the_o last_o of_o the_o twelve_o which_o bellarmine_n allege_v omit_v all_o the_o rest_n and_o whereas_o he_o out_o of_o the_o work_n of_o this_o holy_a pope_n produce_v diverse_a testimony_n clear_o convince_a the_o subjection_n of_o all_o church_n to_o the_o roman_a you_o omit_v the_o rest_n as_o be_v unanswearable_a find_v mean_n to_o except_v against_o one_o 284._o one_o pag._n 284._o which_o be_v who_o doubt_n but_o that_o the_o church_n of_o constantinople_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o the_o most_o religious_a lord_n the_o emperor_n and_o our_o brother_n eusebius_n bishop_n of_o the_o same_o city_n continual_o protest_v this_o testimony_n of_o s._n gregory_n you_o reject_v upon_o pretence_n that_o the_o epistle_n be_v supposititious_a and_o counterfeit_a some_o of_o the_o pope_n allege_v by_o bellarmine_n say_v you_o speak_v not_o but_o their_o counterfeit_v as_o the_o last_o jurist_n pope_n gregoryin_n a_o epistle_n wherein_o eusebius_n b._n of_o constantinople_n be_v say_v to_o have_v be_v subject_a unto_o he_o when_o as_o as_o our_o doctor_n reynolds_n have_v prove_v there_o be_v no_o eusebius_n b._n of_o constantinople_n in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n gregory_n but_o to_o doctor_n reynolds_n i_o oppose_v the_o most_o eminent_a cardinal_n peron_n a_o man_n of_o great_a renown_n learning_n &_o authority_n who_o answer_v 34._o answer_v replip_n l._n 1._o chap._n 34._o 1._o that_o cyriacus_n which_o be_v then_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n may_v have_v two_o name_n and_o be_v call_v eusebius_n cyriacus_n as_o s._n hierome_n be_v call_v eusebius_n hieronymus_n 2._o that_o eusebius_n may_v be_v there_o take_v adiective_o and_o signify_v pious_a or_o religious_a as_o when_o arius_n 5._o arius_n a_o put_fw-mi theod._n l._n 1._o hist_o c._n 5._o write_v to_o eusebius_n b._n of_o nicomedia_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d farewell_n eusebius_n true_o eusebius_n that_o be_v true_o religious_a and_o 3._o that_o it_o be_v a_o error_n of_o the_o exemplarist_n who_o of_o eiusdem_fw-la ill_n write_v and_o blot_v make_v eusebius_n for_o the_o ancient_a copy_n of_o this_o epistle_n current_a for_o the_o space_n of_o 200._o year_n after_o s._n gregory_n make_v no_o mention_n of_o eusebius_n but_o read_v simple_o and_o our_o brother_n b._n of_o the_o same_o city_n as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o relation_n of_o amalarius_n fortunatus_n who_o live_v 800._o year_n since_o and_o set_v down_o this_o whole_a epistle_n of_o s._n gregory_n word_n by_o word_n 1._o word_n de_fw-fr dini_fw-la offic_n l._n 4._o c._n 2._o in_o biblioth_n pat_o edit_n colon_n to_o 9_o part_n 1._o and_o his_o testimony_n alone_o live_v 800._o year_n near_a s._n gregory_n time_n than_o doctor_n reynolds_n or_o yourself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proof_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o epistle_n against_o you_o both_o but_o what_o though_o you_o except_v against_o this_o epistle_n yet_o in_o the_o next_o which_o no_o man_n have_v doubt_v of_o s_o gregory_n in_o like_a manner_n say_v 64._o say_v l._n 7._o ep_n 64._o for_o whereas_o he_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n be_v accuse_v of_o a_o certain_a crime_n profefi_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a if_o any_o fault_n be_v find_v in_o
rome_n and_o be_v so_o many_o witness_n against_o you_o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n acknowledge_v and_o practise_v over_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n polichronius_fw-la be_v b._n of_o jerusalem_n and_o depose_v by_o sixtus_n pope_n as_o bellarmine_n prove_v out_o of_o the_o act_n of_o sixtus_n which_o act_n witness_n baronius_n fin_n baronius_n anno_fw-la 432._o fin_n be_v cite_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o by_o petrus_n damiani_n and_o other_o late_a writer_n and_o if_o as_o you_o object_n 295._o object_n pag._n 295._o baronius_n find_v no_o other_o record_n of_o any_o polychronius_n that_o be_v b._n of_o jerusalem_n at_o that_o time_n do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v there_o be_v none_o such_o to_o omit_v the_o late_a writer_n he_o mention_v petrus_n damiani_n and_o nicolas_n be_v man_n eminent_o learn_v the_o one_o live_v 600._o the_o other_o 800._o year_n near_a the_o time_n of_o sixtus_n than_o baronius_n do_v and_o the_o act_n of_o sixtus_n be_v yet_o more_o ancient_a then_o either_o of_o they_o wherefore_o in_o those_o day_n record_n may_v be_v extant_a of_o polychronius_n and_o his_o deposition_n by_o sixtus_n report_v in_o those_o act_n which_o before_o baronius_n his_o time_n be_v lose_v or_o if_o not_o lose_v yet_o may_v not_o come_v to_o his_o knowledge_n 2._o you_o answer_v 295._o answer_v pag._n 295._o your_o pope_n must_v be_v think_v to_o have_v restore_v bishop_n only_o by_o endeavour_v and_o desire_v that_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v you_o exemplify_v in_o basilides_n who_o cause_n show_v it_o be_v a_o know_a truth_n in_o those_o day_n that_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o restore_v bishop_n depose_v for_o why_o else_o do_v basilides_n travail_v from_o spain_n to_o rome_n to_o procure_v letter_n of_o restitution_n from_o he_o of_o this_o basilides_n you_o say_v 190._o say_v pag._n 289._o fin_n 190._o cyprian_n constitute_v sabinus_n bishop_n instead_o of_o basilides_n who_o he_o have_v depose_v but_o you_o show_v great_a ignorance_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o cyprian_n neither_o depose_v basilides_n nor_o constitute_v sabinus_n in_o his_o place_n basilides_n be_v not_o a_o african_a nor_o any_o way_n belong_v to_o cyprian_n jurisdiction_n who_o be_v primate_n of_o africa_n only_a but_o bishop_n of_o leon_n in_o spain_n and_o for_o his_o enormous_a crime_n be_v just_o depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o country_n flee_v to_o stephen_n pope_n and_o by_o a_o false_a information_n of_o his_o own_o innocency_n deceive_v he_o that_o by_o his_o authority_n and_o command_v he_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o his_o bishopric_n the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n who_o have_v condemn_v he_o scent_n sabinus_n and_o felix_n into_o africa_n to_o inform_v s._n cyprian_n true_o of_o the_o case_n to_o ask_v his_o advice_n and_o require_v his_o intercession_n to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o will_v not_o restore_v basilides_n s._n cyprian_n approve_v their_o proceed_n and_o answer_v that_o if_o basilides_n have_v obtain_v from_o the_o pope_n any_o sentence_n of_o restitution_n it_o be_v surreptitious_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o false_a information_n he_o have_v give_v which_o alone_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v his_o restitution_n void_a as_o not_o only_o the_o civil_a etsi_fw-la civil_a cod._n count_v ius_o l._n etsi_fw-la but_o also_o the_o canon_n law_n dilectus_fw-la law_n de_fw-fr rescrip_n c._n dilectus_fw-la declare_v decree_a in_o a_o case_n like_o to_o this_o of_o basilides_n that_o sentence_n procure_v from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a by_o surreption_n be_v invalid_a and_o of_o no_o force_n wherefore_o s._n cyprian_n right_o answer_v that_o albeit_o stephen_n for_o his_o incircumspection_n may_v be_v argue_v of_o negligence_n in_o give_v so_o easy_a credit_n to_o a_o false_a information_n and_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v deceive_v thereby_o yet_o the_o chief_a fault_n be_v in_o basilides_n who_o with_o lie_n have_v seek_v to_o justify_v himself_o this_o be_v all_o that_o antiquity_n record_v of_o this_o controversy_n which_o show_v that_o in_o those_o ancient_a time_n the_o custom_n of_o bishop_n when_o they_o think_v themselves_o wrong_v by_o their_o metropolitan_o be_v to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o basilides_n do_v against_o which_o custom_n nor_o against_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o admit_v of_o appeal_v neither_o the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n nor_o s._n cyprian_n except_v as_o appear_v in_o this_o that_o they_o blame_v not_o basilides_n for_o appeal_n to_o one_o that_o have_v no_o power_n to_o reiudge_v his_o cause_n but_o for_o his_o surprise_n make_v upon_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n want_n of_o circumspection_n in_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v deceive_v by_o a_o false_a information_n 3._o you_o say_v 290._o say_v pag._n 290._o cyprian_n confirm_v the_o election_n of_o pope_n cornelius_n who_o communion_n both_o he_o as_o himself_o speak_v &_o his_o colleague_n and_o fellow-bishop_n give_v approbation_n unto_o to_o confirm_v the_o election_n of_o a_o bishop_n be_v a_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n which_o therefore_o can_v proceed_v from_o none_o but_o a_o superior_a this_o authority_n though_o you_o deny_v to_o the_o pope_n yet_o out_o of_o a_o desire_n to_o annihilate_v his_o authority_n you_o overshoote_a your_o mark_n so_o far_o as_o to_o make_v he_o inferior_a to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o to_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o their_o confirmation_n a_o thing_n which_o s._n cyprian_n mention_v not_o he_o only_o signify_v to_o cornelius_n that_o novatianus_n have_v make_v a_o schism_n in_o the_o church_n and_o set_v himself_o up_o as_o antipope_v in_o opposition_n to_o cornelius_n and_o the_o african_n be_v doubtful_a which_o of_o the_o two_o they_o shall_v acknowledge_v and_o obey_v as_o true_a pope_n s._n cyprian_n say_v he_o exhort_v all_o that_o sail_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n to_o abandon_v novatianus_n and_o adhere_v to_o cornelius_n and_o procure_v letter_n from_o his_o brethren_n at_o rome_n to_o those_o of_o africa_n that_o be_v full_o certify_v of_o the_o truth_n they_o may_v say_v he_o to_o cornelius_n acknowledge_v and_o firm_o embrace_v you_o and_o your_o communion_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n all_o therefore_o that_o you_o have_v gain_v out_o of_o s._n cyprian_n be_v to_o prove_v yourself_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o to_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_a communion_n and_o to_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o pope_n in_o s._n cyprian_n belief_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n 4._o the_o like_a abuse_n you_o offer_v to_o s._n gregory_n say_v 29â_n say_v pag._n 29â_n that_o he_o seek_v approbation_n from_o the_o four_o patriarch_n as_o soon_o as_o this_o holy_a pope_n be_v place_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o his_o predecessor_n he_o write_v a_o circular_a or_o synodical_a letter_n for_o so_o ancient_o those_o letter_n be_v call_v to_o the_o four_o eastern_a patriarch_n that_o have_v notice_n of_o his_o election_n they_o may_v know_v who_o to_o obey_v and_o who_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o in_o all_o doubt_n of_o faith_n and_o other_o mayor_n cause_n which_o be_v no_o more_o to_o seek_v confirmation_n or_o approbation_n from_o they_o then_o if_o a_o king_n of_o poland_n or_o any_o other_o electiuâ_n prince_n be_v choose_v shall_v write_v a_o circular_a letter_n to_o hiâ_n noble_n give_v they_o notice_n of_o his_o election_n and_o admonish_v they_o of_o their_o duty_n and_o allegiance_n unto_o he_o this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o effect_n of_o those_o synodical_a letter_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o gelasius_n because_o say_v he_o to_o laurence_n bishop_n of_o lignidis_n with_o fraternal_a love_n you_o put_v we_o in_o mind_n that_o we_o shall_v send_v a_o form_n of_o faith_n as_o a_o certain_a medicine_n to_o the_o bishop_n throughout_o illyria_n and_o other_o although_o this_o have_v be_v most_o ample_o perform_v by_o our_o predecessor_n of_o bless_a memory_n yet_o because_o the_o custom_n be_v that_o when_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v new_o make_v he_o send_v a_o form_n of_o his_o faith_n to_o the_o holy_a church_n i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o renew_v the_o same_o in_o a_o compendious_a brevity_n to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n by_o this_o our_o epistle_n may_v understand_v in_o what_o faith_n he_o be_v to_o live_v according_a to_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o father_n and_o as_o the_o pope_n when_o they_o be_v choose_v do_v send_v these_o synodical_a letter_n prescribe_v a_o form_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v observe_v by_o all_o bishop_n so_o likewise_o all_o metropolitan_o do_v send_v to_o the_o pope_n new_o choose_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o the_o end_n it_o may_v be_v approve_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o do_v s._n cyprian_n to_o cornelius_n pope_n call_v it_o 10._o it_o l._n 2._o ep_n 10._o a_o divine_a
communion_n 38._o communion_n ruffin_n l._n 2._o c._n o._n socrat._v l._n 4._o c._n ãâã_d sozo_n l._n o._n c._n 38._o who_o though_o banish_v by_o the_o arian_n have_v not_o thereby_o lose_v their_o jurisdiction_n and_o therefore_o may_v ordain_v moses_n without_o entrench_v on_o the_o liberty_n of_o other_o bishop_n or_o pass_v the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o and_o what_o they_o do_v be_v confirm_v by_o damasus_n pope_n who_o say_v socrates_n 30._o socrates_n l_o 4._o c._n 30._o by_o his_o letter_n approve_v the_o faith_n of_o moses_n and_o confirm_v the_o creation_n of_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o that_o renown_a patriarch_n successor_n to_o s._n athanasius_n who_o be_v expel_v by_o lucius_n appeal_v to_o damasus_n pope_n and_o by_o he_o be_v restore_v to_o his_o church_n of_o alexandria_n wherefore_o this_o example_n show_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o catholic_a communion_n and_o that_o if_o moses_n have_v be_v bring_v to_o to_o you_o to_o be_v consecrate_v bishop_n he_o will_v have_v shun_v you_o as_o he_o shun_v lucius_n your_o five_o example_n 300._o example_n pag._n 300._o be_v of_o athanasius_n b._n of_o alexandria_n depose_v bishop_n without_o egypt_n this_o you_o report_v out_o of_o socrates_n 20._o socrates_n l._n 3._o c._n 20._o who_o have_v no_o such_o word_n nor_o treat_v of_o any_o such_o subject_n your_o last_o example_n 300._o example_n pag._n 300._o be_v of_o cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n who_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n by_o acacius_n b._n of_o caesarea_n this_o make_v against_o yourself_o for_o the_o b._n of_o jerusalem_n be_v suffragan_n to_o the_o b._n of_o cÄsarea_n who_o therefore_o may_v depose_v he_o without_o exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o his_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o metropolitan_a can_v without_o just_a cause_n depose_v his_o suffragan_n and_o therefore_o because_o acacius_n be_v a_o arian_n depose_v cyril_n mere_o out_o of_o hatred_n to_o the_o catholic_a faith_n and_o for_o certain_a crime_n which_o himself_o have_v feign_v against_o he_o the_o deposition_n be_v injust_a and_o judge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n 19_o seleucia_n theod._n l._n 2._o c._n 27._o sozo_n l._n 4._o c._n 24._o so_o crat_v l._n 2._o c._n 35._o niceph._n l._n 9_o c._n 19_o where_o acacius_n dare_v not_o appear_v to_o have_v the_o cause_n of_o cyrill_n examine_v and_o therefore_o both_o he_o and_o his_o complice_n for_o the_o wrong_n do_v to_o cyrill_n and_o for_o other_o their_o heretical_a machination_n be_v themselves_o depose_v and_o cyrill_n restore_v to_o his_o seat_n at_o jerusalem_n these_o be_v your_o six_o example_n which_o upon_o examination_n prove_v all_o against_o yourself_o and_o therefore_o your_o horn_a argument_n frame_v out_o of_o they_o do_v nothing_o else_o but_o gore_n your_o own_o bowel_n chap._n thirty-nine_o of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n sect_n i._o whether_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o general_a council_n in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n it_o be_v decree_v 3.4.5_o decree_v cap._n 3.4.5_o 1._o that_o if_o in_o the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n who_o think_v himself_o to_o be_v wrong_v a_o new_a judgement_n be_v require_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v to_o give_v the_o judge_n 2._o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n depose_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n say_v his_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v again_o none_o be_v to_o be_v place_v in_o his_o see_n until_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v pronounce_v upon_o it_o 3._o that_o a_o bishop_n accuse_v may_v have_v recourse_n to_o rome_n by_o way_n of_o appeal_v against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n you_o object_n 301._o object_n pag._n 301._o 1._o that_o bellarmine_n produce_v in_o this_o place_n this_o council_n as_o a_o sound_a argument_n which_o elsewhere_o herank_v among_o those_o counsel_n that_o be_v to_o be_v partly_o allow_v and_o partly_o reject_v as_o if_o coin_n partly_o mix_v and_o counterfeit_v aught_o to_o be_v take_v for_o good_a payment_n this_o argument_n be_v a_o imposture_n for_o to_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n come_v 376._o bishop_n of_o which_o 300._o be_v catholic_n the_o other_o 76._o arian_n 16._o arian_n socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 16._o these_o 76._o refuse_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o council_n at_o sardica_n unless_o athanasius_n and_o paul_n be_v expel_v which_o condition_n the_o catholic_a bishop_n admit_v not_o but_o answer_v 10._o answer_v sozom._n l._n 31._o c._n 10._o they_o never_o have_v nor_o will_v now_o abstain_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o paul_n and_o athanasius_n especial_o because_o julius_n b._n of_o rome_n have_v examine_v their_o cause_n have_v not_o condemn_v they_o hereupon_o those_o 76._o arian_n bishop_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o council_n hold_v a_o antisynod_n of_o their_o own_o at_o philippopolis_n a_o city_n not_o far_o from_o sardica_n which_o be_v reprove_v as_o be_v a_o conventicle_n of_o arian_n of_o this_o bellarmine_n speak_v when_o he_o say_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v partly_o reprove_v but_o the_o decree_n for_o appeal_n to_o rome_n be_v not_o make_v in_o this_o mock-councell_n yea_o this_o reprove_v athanafius_n for_o appeal_n and_o julius_n pope_n for_o admit_v his_o appeal_n but_o by_o the_o true_a council_n hold_v at_o sardica_n which_o have_v ever_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o church_n &_o in_o no_o part_n reprove_v this_o council_n of_o 300._o bishop_n it_o be_v which_o bellarmine_n allege_v in_o proof_n of_o appeal_v how_o then_o can_v you_o be_v excuse_v in_o say_v that_o he_o produce_v this_o council_n in_o this_o place_n as_o a_o sound_a argument_n which_o elsewhere_o he_o rank_v among_o those_o counsel_n that_o be_v to_o be_v partly_o allow_v and_o partly_o reject_v for_o he_o never_o say_v that_o this_o council_n of_o 300._o bishop_n be_v in_o any_o part_n to_o be_v reject_v 2._o you_o object_n 302._o object_n pag._n 302._o that_o this_o council_n be_v not_o a_o general_a council_n for_o say_v you_o though_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o call_n of_o it_o by_o constantius_n we_o may_v not_o unworthy_o say_v that_o it_o be_v general_a yet_o if_o we_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v afterward_o distract_v and_o divide_v into_o two_o place_n we_o may_v rather_o esteem_v it_o particular_a this_o urge_v not_o for_o the_o distraction_n consist_v in_o so_o small_a a_o number_n of_o bishop_n and_o they_o arian_n their_o absence_n can_v not_o take_v from_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n which_o represent_v all_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o the_o world_n the_o name_n of_o a_o general_a council_n which_o have_v be_v impose_v on_o it_o at_o the_o first_o calling_n no_o more_o than_o the_o antisynod_n hold_v at_o ephesus_n in_o favour_n of_o nestorius_n by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n hinder_v the_o true_a council_n of_o ephesus_n from_o be_v perfect_o and_o absolute_o general_a and_o in_o conformity_n to_o this_o you_o else_o where_o suppose_v and_o confess_v 145._o confess_v pag._n 144._o sin_n 145._o the_o sardican_a council_n to_o be_v a_o general_a council_n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n athanafius_n socrates_n severus_n sulpitius_n justinian_n baronius_n &_o binius_fw-la to_o which_o number_n you_o may_v have_v add_v vigilius_n that_o ancient_a b._n of_o trent_n 5._o trent_n scout_v eucych_n l._n 5._o theodoret_n 8._o theodoret_n l._n 2._o c._n 8._o &_o hincmarus_n 20._o hincmarus_n opuse_n ââ_o c._n 20._o nor_o do_v constantius_n alone_o call_v this_o council_n but_o also_o his_o brother_n constans_n and_o that_o not_o by_o their_o authority_n but_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o julius_n pope_n who_o as_o it_o be_v plain_a out_o of_o socrates_n 16._o socrates_n l._n 2._o c._n 16._o call_v the_o bishop_n and_o appoint_v a_o day_n for_o they_o to_o meote_v at_o sardica_n to_o begin_v the_o council_n sect_n ii_o other_o objection_n of_o doctor_n morton_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n answer_v you_o three_o objection_n 302._o objection_n pag_n 302._o that_o the_o right_n which_o the_o pope_n can_v claim_v for_o appeal_v depend_v altogether_o upon_o humane_a constitution_n have_v be_v already_o answer_v 4._o answer_v above_o chap._n 27._o sect_n 4._o 4._o you_o except_v 304._o except_v pag._n 304._o against_o some_o of_o the_o example_n which_o bellarmine_n produce_v of_o appeal_v make_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o be_v of_o such_o as_o be_v within_o his_o own_o patriarkship_n and_o therefore_o rather_o subject_a to_o he_o then_o to_o other_o from_o whence_o to_o infer_v that_o appeal_v out_o of_o other_o patriarkship_n may_v be_v make_v unto_o he_o be_v say_v you_o ibid._n you_o ibid._n as_o if_o a_o proctor_n shall_v say_v my_o client_n have_v tith_z in_o his_o own_o parish_n therefore_o do_v the_o next_o parish_n adjoin_v owe_v their_o tithe_n unto_o he_o but_o
this_o example_n condemn_v your_o doctrine_n for_o if_o all_o that_o be_v in_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o the_o west_n be_v the_o pope_n subject_n and_o have_v right_a to_o appeal_v unto_o he_o why_o do_v you_o protestant_n who_o can_v deny_v yourselves_o to_o be_v within_o his_o patriarkship_n disclaim_v from_o his_o obedience_n why_o do_v you_o not_o submit_v to_o your_o lawful_a superior_a why_o do_v you_o forbid_v appeal_n and_o all_o recourse_n unto_o he_o and_o if_o as_o here_o you_o confess_v he_o have_v as_o much_o right_n to_o the_o appeal_n of_o they_o which_o be_v within_o his_o own_o patriarkship_n as_o a_o parson_n have_v to_o the_o tithe_n of_o his_o own_o parish_n why_o do_v you_o defend_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o the_o african_n who_o you_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v within_o his_o own_o diocese_n 289._o diocese_n pag._n 289._o and_o therefore_o rather_o subject_a to_o he_o then_o to_o other_o 304._o other_o pag._n 304._o to_o forbid_v appeal_n unto_o he_o why_o do_v you_o so_o often_o inveigh_v against_o the_o pope_n for_o require_v and_o mantain_v their_o own_o right_a herein_o 5._o you_o except_v ibid._n except_v ibid._n against_o other_o appeal_n because_o they_o be_v of_o heretic_n or_o other_o person_n notorious_o impious_a as_o of_o basilides_n martion_n fortunatus_n and_o felix_n or_o felicissimus_n for_o so_o you_o shall_v have_v say_v but_o by_o this_o argument_n you_o may_v as_o well_o prove_v that_o a_o king_n have_v no_o right_a of_o appeal_v in_o his_o kingdom_n for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o not_o only_a person_n that_o be_v wrong_v by_o inferior_a judge_n but_o also_o other_o which_o have_v be_v just_o condemn_v do_v sometime_o appeal_v the_o former_a to_o be_v right_v and_o the_o late_a in_o hope_n to_o procure_v their_o just_a condemnation_n to_o be_v revoke_v by_o favour_n or_o by_o misinform_v their_o sovereign_n wherefore_o as_o it_o be_v sophistry_n to_o inferie_n that_o a_o king_n have_v not_o sovereign_a authority_n in_o his_o kingdom_n because_o some_o that_o appeal_v unto_o he_o be_v wicked_a person_n so_o it_o be_v to_o except_v against_o the_o pope_n supreme_a authority_n because_o some_o that_o appeal_v unto_o he_o be_v wicked_a person_n that_o have_v be_v just_o condemn_v by_o their_o immediate_a superior_n your_o inference_n shall_v have_v be_v that_o because_o all_o sort_n of_o person_n nocent_a and_o innocent_a have_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n it_o right_o follow_v that_o he_o be_v supreme_a judge_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n sect_n iii_o example_n of_o innocent_a appellant_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n we_o produce_v the_o example_n of_o s._n athanasius_n s._n chrysostome_n theodoret_n and_o flavianus_n you_o answer_v 304._o answer_v pag._n 304._o they_o address_v their_o request_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n not_o as_o to_o a_o peremptory_a ludge_n but_o as_o to_o a_o patron_n and_o arbitrary_a days-man_n and_o of_o theodoret_n and_o chrysostome_n you_o have_v say_v before_o 255._o before_o pag._n 255._o they_o only_o require_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n a_o subsidiary_a help_n as_o one_o king_n may_v from_o another_o and_o as_o the_o b._n of_o arles_n may_v from_o the_o b._n of_o paris_n but_o this_o to_o be_v false_a sophistry_n i_o shall_v easy_o prove_v if_o first_o i_o give_v the_o reader_n a_o taste_n of_o your_o ignorance_n concern_v the_o antiquity_n of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n from_o remote_a nation_n in_o general_n sect_n iv_o doctor_n mortons_n ignorance_n concern_v the_o antiquity_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n from_o remote_a nation_n theodoret_n be_v injust_o depose_v from_o his_o bishopric_n of_o cyre_z a_o city_n border_v upon_o persia_n appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n say_v leon._n say_v ep._n ad_fw-la leon._n i_o attend_v the_o sentence_n of_o your_o apostolic_a throne_n and_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n to_o succour_v i_o appeal_n to_o your_o right_n and_o just_a judgement_n and_o to_o command_v that_o i_o be_v bring_v before_o you_o and_o verify_v that_o my_o doctrine_n follow_v the_o apostolical_a path_n you_o startle_v at_o these_o so_o unanswearable_a word_n of_o theodoret_n bid_v we_o m._n we_o pag._n 255._o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr m._n note_v that_o the_o phrase_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n from_o remote_a nation_n be_v very_o uncouth_a in_o those_o day_n give_v we_o thereby_o a_o good_a testimony_n of_o your_o ignorance_n in_o ecclesiastical_a history_n for_o that_o the_o phrase_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n from_o remote_a nation_n be_v not_o very_o uncouth_a but_o very_o familiar_a in_o those_o day_n and_o long_o before_o those_o day_n even_o from_o the_o first_o age_n of_o the_o church_n who_o know_v not_o that_o be_v verse_v in_o antiquity_n for_o 1._o sixtus_n pope_n that_o live_v 300._o year_n before_o theodoret_n ordain_v 2._o ordain_v ep._n 2._o that_o if_o any_o bishop_n be_v wrong_v he_o appeal_v free_o to_o the_o holy_a and_o apostolic_a see_n 2._o marcellus_z the_o first_o declare_v prou._n declare_v ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la episc_n antioch_n prou._n that_o accord_v to_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n all_o bishop_n when_o there_o be_v occasion_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a 3._o fellix_fw-la the_o second_o alex._n second_o ep._n ad_fw-la syn._n alex._n as_o often_o as_o bishop_n shall_v think_v themselves_o wrong_v by_o those_o of_o their_o province_n or_o by_o their_o metropolitan_a or_o have_v they_o in_o suspicion_n let_v they_o appeal_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n 4._o the_o same_o be_v ordain_v by_o victor_n aegyp_n victor_n ep._n ad_fw-la theoph._n caterosque_fw-la episc_n aegyp_n by_o zephyrinus_n sicil._n zephyrinus_n ep._n ad_fw-la episc_n sicil._n by_o fabianus_n hilar_n fabianus_n ep._n ad_fw-la hilar_n and_o melchiade_n hispan_n melchiade_n ep._n ad_fw-la episc_n hispan_n 5._o and_o what_o these_o ancient_a pope_n decree_v the_o holy_a council_n of_o nice_a relate_v by_o julius_n 2._o julius_n ep._n 2._o confirm_v ordain_v that_o all_o bishop_n accuse_v of_o grievous_a crime_n may_v free_o appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o fly_v to_o it_o as_o to_o a_o mother_n for_o defence_n and_o succour_v the_o authority_n of_o this_o canon_n be_v prove_v by_o pisanus_n 350._o pisanus_n l._n 3._o conc._n niceni_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 350._o and_o that_o the_o nicen_n council_n make_v such_o a_o decree_n s._n leo_n 25._o leo_n ep._n 25._o testify_v and_o you_o else_o where_o forget_v yourself_o acknowledge_v r._n acknowledge_v pag._n 308._o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr r._n 6._o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n relate_v not_o only_o by_o catholic_a writer_n but_o also_o by_o the_o centurist_n decree_v 4._o decree_v cap._n 4._o that_o if_o any_o bishop_n be_v depose_v by_o the_o next_o bishop_n and_o protest_v that_o his_o cause_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v a_o new_a fly_v for_o succour_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n no_o other_o be_v to_o be_v install_v in_o his_o see_n after_o he_o have_v put_v in_o his_o appeal_v but_o that_o his_o cause_n be_v sentence_v by_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n 7._o and_o when_o john_n surname_v talaia_n patriarch_n of_o asexandria_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o see_v by_o the_o emporor_n zeno_n and_o peter_n moggus_n set_v up_o in_o his_o place_n john_n say_v liberatus_n 6.18_o liberatus_n liberat._n 6.18_o address_v himself_o to_o calendion_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o have_v take_v from_o he_o synodic_n all_o letter_n of_o intercession_n appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n simplicius_n 8._o when_o flavianus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n valentinian_n the_o emperor_n write_v to_o theodosius_n his_o father-in-law_n chalced._n father-in-law_n extat_fw-la ep_n inter_fw-la ep._n preamb._fw-la conc._n chalced._n that_o flavianus_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n appeal_v by_o petition_n to_o the_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n and_o liberatus_n 12._o liberatus_n cap._n 12._o that_o sentence_n have_v be_v pronounce_v against_o flavianus_n he_o appeal_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n by_o petition_n present_v to_o his_o legate_n 9_o and_o leo_n 8._o leo_n ep._n 8._o write_v to_o the_o same_o flavianus_n eutyches_n protest_v that_o in_o full_a judgement_n he_o present_v to_o you_o a_o request_n of_o appeal_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v 10._o and_o flavianus_n answer_v leo_n 7._o leo_n extat_fw-la ep._n inter_fw-la ep._n leonis_fw-la ante_fw-la ep._n 7._o eutyches_n have_v inform_v you_o that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o judgement_n he_o present_v to_o we_o and_o to_o the_o holy_a council_n hear_v assemble_v libel_n of_o appeal_n to_o your_o holiness_n which_o be_v never_o do_v by_o he_o 11._o and_o the_o same_o leo_n 25._o leo_n ep._n 25._o write_v to_o theodosius_n the_o young_a beseech_v he_o that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o flavianus_n
the_o judgement_n of_o a_o council_n for_o in_o case_n of_o a_o appeal_n two_o thing_n be_v necessary_a the_o first_o be_v to_o judge_v whether_o the_o cause_n be_v lawful_a if_o it_o be_v to_o admit_v of_o the_o appeal_n to_o annul_v the_o sentence_n pronounce_v against_o the_o appellant_n and_o restore_v the_o cause_n to_o the_o same_o state_n in_o which_o it_o be_v before_o his_o condemnation_n this_o innocentius_n perform_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o chrysostome_n he_o admit_v his_o appeal_n he_o absolve_v he_o he_o annul_v the_o council_n that_o condemn_v he_o he_o excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o empress_n by_o who_o procurement_n he_o have_v be_v condemn_v and_o upon_o their_o repentance_n absolve_v they_o all_o this_o he_o do_v without_o a_o council_n show_v that_o he_o acknowledge_v not_o insufficiency_n in_o himself_o nor_o think_v the_o only_a remedy_n to_o be_v in_o a_o council_n the_o second_o thing_n require_v in_o case_n of_o a_o appeal_v be_v to_o proceed_v to_o a_o new_a judgement_n name_v judge_n either_o of_o bishop_n of_o the_o adjoin_v province_n or_o else_o by_o send_v legate_n from_o rome_n with_o authority_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n together_o with_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n adjoin_v or_o if_o the_o weight_n of_o the_o cause_n require_v it_o to_o call_v a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o it_o may_v be_v determine_v with_o satisfaction_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n as_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v prescribe_v 25._o prescribe_v leo_fw-la ep._n 25._o this_o also_o be_v exact_o perform_v by_o innocentius_n pope_n in_o the_o appeal_n of_o chrysostome_n innocent_o say_v palladius_n chrysost_n palladius_n in_o vit_fw-mi chrysost_n have_v receive_v both_o party_n into_o his_o communion_n determine_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o theophilus_n shall_v be_v abrogate_a and_o annul_v say_v they_o shall_v hold_v another_o synod_n irreprovable_a of_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o west_n and_o east_n this_o be_v innocentius_n his_o desire_n which_o as_o sozomen_n report_v he_o propose_v by_o five_o bishop_n 28._o bishop_n l._n 8._o c._n 28._o and_o two_o priest_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o honorius_n and_o arcadius_n wish_v they_o to_o appoint_v a_o time_n and_o place_n for_o the_o council_n but_o can_v not_o effect_v it_o not_o for_o want_v of_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n to_o call_v the_o bishop_n as_o you_o misinterpret_v but_o because_o as_o sozomen_n declare_v ibid._n declare_v ibid._n the_o enemy_n of_o chrysostome_n oppose_v it_o be_v support_v by_o the_o temporal_a power_n of_o arcadius_n and_o eudoxia_n without_o who_o consent_n a_o council_n can_v not_o be_v hold_v the_o city_n in_o which_o it_o shall_v be_v hold_v be_v subject_a to_o they_o and_o at_o their_o command_n wherefore_o innocentius_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v any_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n in_o the_o emperor_n to_o call_v a_o council_n as_o you_o comment_v but_o only_o request_v he_o as_o be_v lord_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o appoint_v a_o time_n and_o place_n when_o and_o where_o in_o some_o city_n of_o he_o the_o council_n may_v be_v hold_v which_o he_o by_o his_o spiritual_a power_n intend_v to_o call_v it_o rest_v therefore_o that_o whatsoever_o you_o have_v object_v out_o of_o this_o history_n of_o chrysostome_n against_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v nothing_o but_o untruth_n and_o ignorant_a mistake_n among_o which_o i_o will_v score_v up_o one_o other_o which_o be_v that_o in_o this_o matter_n of_o appeal_v to_o rome_n you_o say_v m._n say_v pag._n 307._o m._n both_o your_o cardinal_n baronius_n and_o bellarmine_n give_v for_o instance_n the_o example_n of_o chrysostome_n b._n of_o antioch_n those_o cardinal_n be_v not_o so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o call_v chrysostome_n b._n of_o antioch_n that_o be_v your_o mistake_n father_v on_o they_o he_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o nectarius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n by_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n choose_v patriarch_n of_o that_o imperial_a city_n and_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o emperor_n arcadius_n bring_v from_o antioch_n thither_o and_o there_o consecrate_a bishop_n sect_n vii_o that_o flavianus_n appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n a_o other_o example_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n be_v of_o flavianus_n to_o which_o you_o answer_v two_o thing_n show_v ignorance_n in_o the_o one_o and_o falsehood_n in_o the_o other_o ignorance_n in_o say_v ivit_fw-la say_v pag._n 308._o fin_n 309._o ivit_fw-la that_o of_o this_o same_o flavianus_n you_o have_v say_v enough_o already_o you_o have_v indeed_o already_o speak_v of_o flavianus_n enough_o to_o the_o discredit_n of_o your_o cause_n 296.297_o cause_n pag._n 296.297_o but_o not_o of_o this_o same_o flavianus_n for_o flavianus_n of_o which_o there_o you_o speak_v be_v b._n of_o antioch_n and_o live_v in_o time_n of_o damasus_n pope_n but_o flavianus_n of_o which_o now_o you_o speak_v be_v b._n of_o constantinople_n and_o live_v in_o time_n of_o leo_n the_o great_a 70._o year_n after_o the_o other_o be_v it_o not_o then_o too_o great_a a_o mistake_n in_o a_o man_n that_o profess_v so_o much_o learning_n to_o shift_v of_o what_o we_o allege_v in_o proof_n of_o appeal_v from_o the_o example_n of_o the_o one_o by_o what_o you_o have_v say_v of_o the_o other_o especial_o their_o case_n be_v far_o different_a to_o ignorance_n you_o add_v falsehood_n say_v fin_n say_v pag._n 308._o fin_n it_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a matter_n for_o you_o out_o of_o the_o example_n of_o flavianus_n to_o collect_v a_o right_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n from_o his_o appeal_n to_o a_o synod_n to_o prove_v that_o flavianus_n appeal_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o a_o synod_n you_o rehearse_v in_o your_o margin_n a_o latin_a sentence_n of_o leo_n write_v to_o theodosius_n the_o empetor_n which_o you_o english_a not_o because_o leo_n say_v not_o that_o flavianus_n appeal_v to_o a_o synod_n that_o be_v your_o false_a comment_n but_o express_o affirm_v that_o he_o put_v up_o a_o petition_n of_o appeal_v to_o his_o legate_n which_o be_v not_o to_o appeal_v to_o they_o but_o to_o he_o who_o person_n the_o legate_n represent_v yea_o the_o very_a word_n of_o leo_n which_o you_o recite_v direct_o testify_v that_o he_o which_o require_v a_o council_n be_v not_o flavianus_n but_o leo_n himself_o yield_v for_o his_o reason_n the_o nicen_n canon_n which_o command_n that_o after_o the_o put_n in_o of_o appeal_n in_o cause_n of_o such_o weight_n the_o call_n of_o a_o general_a council_n be_v necessary_a moreover_o that_o flavianus_n appeal_v and_o not_o to_o a_o synod_n but_o to_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o truth_n declare_v not_o only_o by_o the_o word_n of_o leo_n but_o testify_v also_o by_o other_o writer_n flavianus_n say_v liberatus_n 1â_n liberatus_n cap._n 1â_n appeal_v to_o the_o apostolic_a see_v by_o petition_n present_v to_o his_o legate_n and_o the_o emperor_n valentinian_n the_o three_o write_v to_o theodosius_n the_o second_o emperor_n of_o the_o east_n châlced_v east_n in_o eppraeambul_n council_n châlced_v we_o ought_v in_o our_o day_n to_o preserve_v to_o the_o bless_a apostle_n peter_n the_o dignity_n of_o reverence_n proper_a to_o he_o inviolate_a that_o the_o bless_a bishop_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n to_o who_o antiquity_n have_v yield_v the_o priesthood_n over_o all_o may_v have_v way_n to_o judge_v of_o bishop_n and_o of_o faith_n for_o therefore_o flavianus_n b._n of_o constantinople_n follow_v the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n have_v appeal_v to_o he_o by_o petition_n in_o the_o contention_n move_v concern_v faith_n and_o if_o you_o believe_v not_o these_o witness_n believe_v the_o centurist_n who_o testify_v against_o you_o 778._o you_o cent._n 5._o col_fw-fr 778._o that_o sometime_o bishop_n condemn_v in_o synod_n appeal_v to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o do_v flavianus_n in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n what_o testimony_n more_o express_a than_o these_o be_v it_o not_o manifest_v out_o of_o liberatus_n out_o of_o valentinian_n out_o of_o the_o centurist_n yea_o and_o out_o of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o leo_n which_o you_o produce_v for_o the_o contrary_a that_o flavianus_n appeal_v not_o to_o a_o synod_n but_o to_o he_o who_o but_o doctor_n morton_n can_v deny_v so_o invincible_a a_o truth_n and_o no_o less_o apparent_a it_o be_v that_o antiquity_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o pope_n authority_n to_o judge_v of_o bishop_n and_o of_o faith_n and_o that_o appeal_v unto_o he_o be_v ordain_v by_o the_o ancient_a counsel_n for_o why_o else_o do_v valentinian_n say_v to_o theodosius_n his_o father-in-law_n that_o flanianus_fw-la appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o counsel_n sect_n viii_o of_o nilus_n equal_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o right_n of_o appeal_v nilus_n a_o heretical_a bishop_n of_o thessalonica_n
and_o a_o profess_a enemy_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o all_o heretic_n be_v against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n object_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o which_o say_v he_o it_o be_v decree_v that_o if_o a_o clerk_n have_v a_o cause_n against_o a_o clerk_n it_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o bishop_n if_o against_o a_o bishop_n by_o the_o archbishop_n if_o against_o a_o archbishop_n by_o the_o primate_n or_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o this_o objection_n the_o holy_a and_o learned_a pope_n nicolas_n the_o first_o answer_v near_o 800._o year_n since_o imper._n since_o in_o ep._n ad_fw-la michael_n imper._n that_o by_o primate_n which_o be_v there_o in_o greek_a ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o signify_v a_o prince_n be_v mean_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n this_o explication_n turrianus_n 4._o turrianus_n pro_fw-la ep._n rom._n pont._n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o bellarmine_n 2d_o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 2d_o and_o binius_fw-la 129._o binius_fw-la tom._n 2._o pag._n 129._o confirm_v both_o because_o the_o title_n of_o prince_n more_o fit_o agree_v to_o he_o then_o to_o any_o other_o primate_n as_o also_o because_o it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o in_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v especial_o in_o the_o east_n any_o primate_fw-la distinct_a from_o the_o archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n wherefore_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o if_o a_o bishop_n have_v a_o cause_n with_o his_o metropolitan_a it_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o by_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n if_o the_o party_n be_v near_o to_o he_o and_o willing_a to_o stand_v to_o his_o judgement_n this_o say_v you_o 309._o you_o pag._n 309._o it_o false_a for_o the_o canon_n use_v a_o climax_n or_o gradation_n from_o clerk_n to_o bishop_n from_o bishop_n to_z archbishop_z from_o archbishop_n to_o primate_n or_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n from_o whence_o you_o infer_v that_o if_o our_o exposition_n be_v true_a the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n as_o a_o general_n be_v above_o a_o colonel_n because_o in_o gradation_n of_o appeal_v the_o last_o be_v always_o the_o high_a and_o most_o excellent_a a_o thing_n not_o only_o contrary_a to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n which_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n leon._n church_n in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n but_o never_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v of_o by_o any_o of_o the_o greek_n nor_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n themselves_o who_o by_o their_o claim_n of_o equal_a privilege_n never_o challenge_v authority_n above_o the_o pope_n nor_o equal_a with_o he_o over_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o only_o that_o as_o he_o by_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n be_v supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a throughout_o the_o world_n so_o they_o in_o the_o second_o place_n under_o he_o and_o by_o his_o permission_n may_v have_v authority_n to_o judge_v throughout_o the_o east_n the_o cause_n of_o all_o that_o shall_v be_v willing_a to_o accept_v of_o their_o judgement_n which_o authority_n the_o pope_n though_o entreat_v by_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n refuse_v to_o grant_v unto_o they_o as_o be_v a_o wrong_n to_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o therefore_o bellarmine_n 22._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 22._o out_o of_o leo_n and_o liberatus_n right_o observe_v that_o this_o canon_n object_v by_o nilus_n be_v never_o receive_v in_o the_o church_n as_o be_v unlawful_o make_v in_o absence_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n who_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n this_o be_v the_o substance_n of_o this_o controversy_n in_o the_o prosecution_n whereof_o you_o falsify_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o be_v guilty_a of_o some_o other_o error_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v brief_o advertise_v you_o 1._o therefore_o bellarmine_n true_o say_v that_o custom_n the_o best_a interpreter_n of_o law_n plain_o show_v it_o be_v never_o lawful_a to_o appeal_v to_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n but_o only_o from_o place_n within_o his_o own_o patriarkship_n and_o that_o no_o example_n can_v be_v give_v of_o a_o appeal_v make_v to_o the_o eastern_a church_n out_o of_o the_o west_n south_n or_o north._n you_o to_o cross_n bellarmine_n say_v 310._o say_v pag._n 310._o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n speak_v general_o of_o every_o church_n and_o in_o proof_n thereof_o falsify_v the_o council_n add_v to_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o canon_n these_o word_n in_o quacunque_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la in_o every_o church_n put_v they_o down_o in_o a_o different_a character_n as_o the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n and_o cite_v both_o it_o and_o they_o out_o of_o binius_fw-la who_o have_v this_o canon_n 129._o canon_n tom._n 2._o pag._n 129._o of_o three_o different_a version_n and_o yet_o no_o such_o word_n in_o any_o of_o they_o 2._o you_o have_v hitherto_o pretend_v &_o afterward_o repeat_v again_o that_o no_o one_o man_n can_v be_v head_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n on_o earth_n yet_o now_o upon_o condition_n that_o the_o pope_n may_v not_o have_v that_o dignity_n you_o be_v content_v to_o allow_v it_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n for_o you_o say_v fin_n say_v pag._n 302._o fin_n we_o confess_v that_o the_o supreme_a right_n of_o appeal_n be_v proper_a to_o a_o monarch_n it_o be_v as_o essential_a a_o part_n of_o his_o monarchy_n to_o have_v the_o right_n of_o appeal_n as_o it_o be_v for_o he_o to_o be_v a_o monarch_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o you_o here_o grant_v to_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n a_o supreme_a right_n of_o appeal_n from_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n make_v he_o a_o monarch_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n 3._o out_o of_o the_o gradation_n which_o the_o council_n make_v from_o clerk_n to_o bishop_n from_o bishop_n to_o archbishop_n from_o archbishop_n to_o the_o pope_n or_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n you_o infer_v the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v above_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v a_o senseless_a paradox_n collect_v from_o a_o false_a ground_n for_o if_o because_o a_o archbishop_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o by_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n you_o may_v infer_v the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n to_o be_v equal_a with_o the_o pope_n or_o above_o he_o you_o may_v by_o like_a consequence_n infer_v that_o in_o a_o army_n a_o colonel_n be_v equal_a to_o the_o general_n or_o above_o he_o because_o a_o common_a soldier_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o his_o captain_n &_o the_o captain_n by_o his_o general_n or_o by_o his_o colonel_n for_o in_o this_o gradation_n the_o colonel_n be_v the_o last_o and_o therefore_o by_o your_o rule_n the_o high_a and_o most_o excellent_a with_o such_o sophistry_n you_o answer_v our_o argument_n and_o frame_v your_o own_o 4._o bellarmine_n say_v the_o council_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v of_o the_o first_o judgement_n but_o this_o say_v you_o 311._o you_o pag._n 311._o evident_o cross_v the_o pope_n exposition_n false_a for_o the_o pope_n allow_v to_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n permissive_o the_o first_o judgement_n of_o eastern_a cause_n if_o the_o party_n be_v willing_a to_o accept_v of_o his_o judgement_n but_o not_o the_o second_o by_o way_n of_o appeal_n out_o of_o his_o own_o patriarkeship_n 5._o why_o do_v you_o conceal_v what_o bellarmine_n and_o binius_fw-la add_v namely_o that_o if_o we_o shall_v grant_v to_o you_o your_o inference_n out_o of_o this_o canon_n it_o will_v not_o follow_v that_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o the_o pope_n for_o the_o pope_n power_n extend_v not_o only_o to_o right_v they_o which_o be_v wrong_v by_o their_o metropolitan_o but_o also_o to_o judge_v the_o metropolitan_o and_o patriarch_n themselves_o and_o to_o right_v they_o even_o when_o they_o be_v wrong_v by_o whole_a counsel_n of_o bishop_n as_o the_o example_n of_o athanasius_n chrysostome_n flavianus_n theodoret_n and_o other_o convince_v sect_n ix_o the_o rest_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n argument_n against_o appeal_v to_o rome_n the_o rest_n of_o your_o instance_n against_o appeal_n as_o of_o fortunatus_n and_o felicissimus_n 311._o felicissimus_n pag._n 311._o take_v from_o s._n cyprian_n of_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n 321._o milevis_n pag._n 321._o of_o the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a 324.325_o cecilian_a pag._n 324.325_o from_o s._n augustine_n have_v be_v already_o 2._o already_o chap._n 25.26_o &_o 30._o sect_n 2._o answer_v one_o only_o remain_v take_v from_o a_o epistle_n as_o you_o say_v 318._o say_v pag_n 318._o of_o damasus_n pope_n it_o be_v not_o among_o the_o epistle_n of_o damasus_n but_o of_o s._n ambrose_n and_o yet_o his_o it_n can_v be_v for_o in_o it_o mention_n be_v make_v of_o he_o as_o of_o a_o three_o person_n wherefore_o who_o be_v the_o epistle_n be_v be_v a_o
the_o universal_a church_n have_v no_o right_a thereunto_o a_o most_o ungodly_a comparison_n for_o these_o two_o pope_n be_v of_o the_o most_o holy_a learned_a and_o renown_a prelate_n that_o ever_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n since_o his_o time_n who_o sanctity_n god_n have_v testify_v with_o most_o illustrious_a miracle_n and_o who_o all_o posterity_n have_v just_o honour_v with_o the_o surname_n of_o great_a s._n leo_n be_v he_o that_o with_o great_a care_n and_o vigilancy_n suppress_v the_o manichee_n that_o come_v fly_v out_o of_o the_o africa_n to_o rome_n &_o other_o place_n of_o italy_n that_o use_v singular_a industry_n to_o root_v out_o the_o donatist_n in_o africa_n the_o pelagian_o in_o france_n &_o the_o priscilianist_n in_o spain_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o great_a learning_n and_o fame_n that_o be_v then_o live_v in_o those_o country_n to_o be_v watchful_a and_o assemble_v counsel_n for_o the_o condemn_a and_o extirpate_v those_o heresy_n and_o like_o wise_a he_o himself_o against_o the_o error_n of_o nestorius_n eutyches_n &_o dioscorus_n assemble_v in_o the_o east_n that_o famous_a council_n of_o 630._o bishop_n at_o chalcedon_n who_o all_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o head_n and_o themselves_o his_o member_n and_o child_n and_o that_o to_o he_o the_o government_n of_o the_o church_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n leon._n saviour_n in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n and_o who_o esteem_v his_o word_n as_o the_o word_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o his_o judgment_n as_o oracle_n of_o god_n cry_v out_o all_o which_o one_o voice_n 1._o voice_n act._n 1._o peter_n have_v speak_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o leo_n leo_n have_v judge_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n nor_o be_v s._n gregory_n of_o less_o renown_n for_o to_o omit_v the_o admirable_a humility_n wherewith_o he_o refuse_v the_o dignity_n of_o supreme_a pastor_n the_o conversion_n of_o our_o english_a nation_n and_o other_o great_a work_n which_o he_o perform_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n the_o excellent_a book_n he_o write_v for_o which_o he_o have_v deserve_v the_o title_n of_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o many_o famous_a miracle_n wherewith_o god_n declare_v his_o sanctity_n who_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o admirable_a eulogy_n wherewith_o ancient_a writer_n have_v celebrate_v his_o praise_n among_o other_o that_o famous_a archbishop_n of_o toledo_n and_o primate_n of_o spain_n s._n hildephonsus_fw-la write_v of_o he_o illust_n he_o in_o lib._n de_fw-la viris_fw-la illust_n that_o in_o sanctity_n he_o surpass_v antony_n in_o eloquence_n cyprian_n in_o wisdom_n augustine_n &_o by_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v endow_v with_o so_o great_a light_n of_o humane_a science_n that_o in_o former_a age_n none_o have_v be_v equal_a unto_o he_o and_o petrus_n diaconus_fw-la testify_v greg._n testify_v vit._n s._n greg._n that_o he_o see_v the_o holy_a ghost_n in_o form_n of_o a_o dove_n at_o his_o care_n inspire_v he_o while_o he_o be_v write_v which_o alone_o may_v have_v make_v you_o forbear_v the_o traduce_v of_o so_o admirable_a a_o man_n but_o return_v to_o our_o question_n this_o very_a evasion_n of_o you_o to_o wit_n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n be_v no_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o conclude_v a_o papal_a authority_n because_o they_o speak_v in_o their_o own_o cause_n sufficient_o convince_v that_o you_o know_v they_o to_o have_v acknowledge_v such_o authority_n in_o themselves_o and_o that_o when_o you_o deny_v it_o you_o speak_v without_o all_o ground_n of_o truth_n for_o who_o can_v think_v that_o s._n leo_n s._n gregory_n and_o many_o other_o pope_n renown_a martyr_n and_o glorious_a confessor_n most_o eminent_a in_o humility_n and_o all_o kind_n of_o virtue_n and_o to_o who_o sanctity_n god_n add_v the_o seal_n of_o divine_a miracle_n shall_v with_o a_o luciferian_a pride_n arrogate_v to_o themselves_o pastoral_a authority_n &_o power_n over_o the_o church_n of_o god_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n if_o that_o dignity_n have_v not_o be_v give_v by_o christ_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o in_o he_o to_o they_o i_o deny_v therefore_o that_o when_o they_o maintain_v their_o authority_n they_o speak_v in_o their_o own_o cause_n they_o speak_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o god_n as_o witness_n yourself_o 4â_n yourself_o pag._n 4â_n s._n paul_n do_v when_o he_o say_v 11._o say_v rom._n 11._o i_o will_v magnify_v my_o office_n in_o as_o much_o as_o i_o be_o doctor_n of_o the_o gentile_n and_o the_o like_a do_v s._n gregory_n when_o upon_o that_o text_n he_o collect_v a_o general_a lesson_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o own_o jurisdiction_n against_o such_o as_o you_o be_v say_v 36._o say_v l._n 4._o ep_n 36._o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o so_o to_o carry_v humility_n in_o our_o hart_n that_o we_o do_v keep_v and_o preserve_v the_o dignity_n of_o that_o order_n whereunto_o we_o be_v call_v wherefore_o as_o if_o a_o viceroy_n shall_v defend_v &_o maintain_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o place_n for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o king_n his_o master_n and_o the_o repression_n of_o seditious_a person_n he_o that_o shall_v oppose_v he_o and_o resist_v his_o authority_n under_o colour_n that_o he_o speak_v in_o his_o own_o cause_n will_v be_v account_v no_o better_a than_o a_o rebel_n so_o no_o other_o reckon_n be_v to_o be_v make_v of_o he_o that_o reject_v the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n the_o vicar_n and_o lieutenant_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n because_o they_o defend_v their_o authority_n for_o they_o do_v it_o to_o defend_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n their_o master_n to_o magnify_v their_o office_n with_o s._n paul_n and_o with_o s._n gregory_n to_o preserve_v the_o dignity_n of_o that_o order_n whereunto_o they_o be_v call_v which_o dignity_n s._n augustine_n 92._o augustine_n ep._n 92._o and_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o milevis_n acknowledge_v to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n but_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o desire_v to_o be_v resolve_v of_o a_o doubt_n you_o confess_v 301._o confess_v pag._n 301._o that_o power_n of_o appeal_n if_o it_o be_v right_a and_o proper_a be_v a_o most_o certain_a argument_n of_o dominion_n again_o you_o confess_v 8._o confess_v pag._n 303._o mark_fw-mi fin_fw-fr n._n 8._o that_o s._n gregory_n excommunicate_v john_n a_o greek_a bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianaea_n because_o he_o have_v presume_v to_o judge_v adrian_z bishop_n of_o thebes_n after_o he_o have_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o convince_v s._n gregory_n to_o have_v believe_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n may_v lawful_o appeal_v from_o their_o own_o metropolitan_n and_o from_o their_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o that_o the_o same_o see_v have_v true_a and_o proper_a right_n to_o admit_v their_o appeal_n and_o reiudge_a their_o cause_n which_o it_o can_v not_o have_v if_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o true_a &_o proper_a authority_n over_o the_o greek_a church_n how_o then_o can_v you_o deny_v that_o s._n gregory_n believe_v himself_o to_o have_v that_o authority_n or_o that_o he_o practise_v the_o same_o yea_o that_o he_o have_v power_n and_o jurisdiction_n not_o only_o over_o the_o greek_a church_n but_o also_o over_o the_o universal_a church_n &_o practise_v the_o same_o be_v a_o thing_n so_o certain_a that_o your_o protestant_a brethren_n friccius_n peter_n martyr_n carion_n philippus_n nicolai_n the_o centurist_n and_o osiander_n 29._o osiander_n apud_fw-la brier_n protest_v apol._n tract_n 1._o sect_n 7._o subdiu_fw-la 9_o à _fw-la n._n 11._o ad_fw-la 29._o show_v out_o of_o his_o writing_n these_o particular_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n appoint_v her_o watch_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o the_o apostolic_a see_v be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o apostolic_a see_n that_o s._n gregory_n challenge_v to_o himself_o power_n to_o command_v archbishop_n to_o ordain_v or_o depose_v bishop_n that_o he_o assume_v to_o himself_o right_o for_o cite_v archbishop_n to_o declare_v their_o cause_n before_o he_o when_o they_o be_v accuse_v and_o also_o to_o excommunicate_v &_o depose_v they_o give_v commission_n to_o their_o neighbour_n bishop_n to_o proceed_v against_o they_o that_o in_o their_o province_n he_o place_v his_o legate_n to_o examine_v and_o end_v the_o cause_n of_o such_o as_o appeal_v to_o the_o roman_a see_v that_o he_o usurp_a power_n of_o appoint_v synod_n in_o their_o province_n and_o require_v archbishop_n that_o if_o any_o cause_n of_o great_a importance_n happen_v they_o shall_v refer_v the_o same_o to_o he_o appoint_v in_o province_n his_o vicar_n over_o the_o church_n to_o end_v small_a matter_n and_o to_o reserve_v the_o great_a cause_n to_o himself_o all_o this_o be_v testify_v by_o your_o own_o brethren_n to_o which_o doctor_n sanders_n 541._o
profess_v by_o acknowledge_v ibid._n acknowledge_v ibid._n that_o he_o rule_v over_o they_o as_o the_o head_n do_v over_o the_o member_n and_o therefore_o beseech_v he_o to_o confirm_v their_o decree_n with_o his_o authority_n they_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n we_o pray_v you_o to_o honour_v our_o judgement_n with_o your_o decree_n and_o that_o as_o in_o what_o concern_v the_o weal_n we_o have_v hold_v correspondence_n to_o our_o head_n so_o your_o sovereignty_n will_v fulfil_v unto_o your_o child_n what_o be_v fit_a and_o convenient_a these_o testimony_n so_o clear_a and_o pregnant_a can_v but_o convince_v the_o understanding_n of_o any_o impartial_a reader_n that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n believe_v the_o universal_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n who_o therefore_o the_o same_o council_n often_o call_v 1.2.3_o call_v act._n 1.2.3_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n sect_n iii_o whether_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n which_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v to_o the_o pope_n argue_v in_o he_o no_o more_o but_o a_o general_a care_n of_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o belong_v to_o every_o bishop_n and_o to_o every_o christian._n of_o all_o the_o proof_n hereunto_o allege_v you_o take_v no_o notice_n two_o only_o except_v namely_o of_o the_o title_n of_o universal_a bishop_n and_o of_o the_o metaphor_n of_o a_o vine_n by_o which_o the_o council_n express_v the_o universal_a church_n say_v leon._n say_v in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n that_o the_o custody_n thereof_o be_v by_o christ_n our_o saviour_n commit_v to_o the_o pope_n these_o two_o you_o call_v two_o post_n to_o support_v the_o ruinous_a monarchy_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o your_o answer_n to_o they_o here_o 117.118_o here_o pag._n 117.118_o and_o afterward_o again_o 236._o again_o pag._n 236._o be_v that_o these_o attribute_n import_v no_o universal_a power_n of_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o pope_n but_o of_o providence_n and_o care_n which_o every_o bishop_n shall_v have_v in_o wish_v and_o to_o his_o power_n endeavour_v the_o universal_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o if_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n import_v no_o more_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n that_o be_v the_o government_n thereof_o be_v by_o christ_n commit_v not_o only_o to_o every_o bishop_n but_o also_o to_o every_o christian_a man_n and_o woman_n who_o shall_v wish_v and_o to_o their_o power_n procure_v the_o universal_a good_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o you_o object_n 236._o object_n pag._n 116.117_o &_o 236._o that_o eleutherius_fw-la pope_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n say_v the_o universal_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v commit_v to_o you_o that_o you_o may_v labour_v for_o all_o man_n and_o that_o according_a to_o binius_fw-la his_o exposition_n the_o meaning_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la be_v that_o for_o as_o much_o as_o heretic_n oppugn_v the_o catholic_a and_o universal_a church_n be_v belong_v to_o every_o bishop_n to_o have_v a_o universal_a care_n to_o defend_v and_o support_v it_o and_o this_o say_v you_o be_v a_o true_a answer_n indeed_o but_o you_o speak_v untrue_o and_o interpret_v false_o for_o binius_fw-la have_v no_o such_o word_n as_o universal_a care_n nor_o do_v he_o speak_v of_o bishop_n only_o but_o say_v that_o a_o care_n &_o solicitude_n of_o defend_v the_o universal_a church_n against_o heretic_n belong_v not_o only_o to_o bishop_n but_o to_o every_o christian_a for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o be_v command_v by_o god_n eccl._n c._n 4._o to_o fight_v fortruth_n and_o justice_n until_o death_n how_o do_v these_o word_n of_o binius_fw-la prove_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o or_o that_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n acknowledge_v he_o not_o to_o have_v authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o only_o a_o charitable_a care_n of_o her_o good_a as_o s._n paul_n have_v and_o as_o every_o bishop_n and_o every_o christian_a man_n and_o woman_n according_a to_o their_o power_n be_v bind_v to_o have_v for_o do_v not_o that_o council_n give_v to_o pope_n leo_n the_o title_n of_o universal_a archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n or_o as_o you_o set_v it_o down_o 235._o down_o pag._n 235._o of_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o these_o word_n say_v you_o ibid._n you_o ibid._n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n but_o of_o two_o deacon_n write_v to_o the_o council_n and_o of_o paschasinus_n the_o pope_n legate_n false_a for_o it_o be_v give_v to_o he_o 3._o he_o act._n 3._o in_o four_o different_a petition_n of_o theodorus_n and_o ischyrion_n deacon_n of_o alexandria_n of_o athanasius_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o same_o city_n and_o of_o sophronius_n and_o the_o council_n approve_v thereof_o command_v their_o petition_n to_o be_v register_v in_o the_o acts._n moreover_o the_o same_o title_n be_v give_v he_o by_o paschasinus_n who_o though_o he_o be_v his_o legate_n be_v a_o reverend_a bishop_n as_o also_o by_o martian_a the_o emperor_n the_o council_n no_o way_n except_v thereat_o and_o do_v not_o s._n gregory_n and_o after_o he_o the_o angelical_a doctor_n s._n thomas_n testify_z that_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o chalcedon_n with_o the_o follow_a father_n give_v the_o same_o title_n to_o leo_n pope_n and_o do_v not_o leo_n a_o man_n of_o admirable_a sanctity_n &_o learning_n instyle_v himself_o bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o do_v not_o the_o regulars_n of_o constantinople_n and_o of_o syria_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o jerusalem_n give_v the_o same_o title_n to_o agapetus_n pope_n in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o menas_n 3._o menas_n see_v all_o this_o prove_v above_o chap._n 15._o sect_n 3._o again_o do_v not_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n acknowledge_v in_o leo_n power_n to_o restore_v theodoret_n to_o his_o bishopric_n of_o cyre_z border_v upon_o persia_n from_o which_o he_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n â_o ephesus_n act._n â_o do_v it_o not_o acknowledge_v in_o he_o authority_n to_o depose_v dioscorus_n the_o great_a patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n 3._o east_n act._n 3._o do_v not_o all_o those_o father_n be_v the_o representative_a body_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n profess_v leon._n profess_v in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n that_o leo_n pope_n do_v preside_v &_o rule_n over_o they_o as_o the_o head_n over_o the_o member_n be_v this_o authority_n common_a to_o every_o bishop_n or_o do_v eleutherius_fw-la or_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n acknowledge_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o he_o that_o will_v see_v how_o imposterous_o you_o wrest_v the_o testimony_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la against_o the_o universal_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o against_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n let_v he_o read_v the_o epistle_n and_o he_o shall_v find_v that_o eleutherius_fw-la a_o little_a before_o the_o word_n which_o you_o object_n declare_v that_o althought_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o examine_v the_o accusation_n and_o crime_n object_v against_o bishop_n either_o before_o their_o metropolitan_o or_o before_o the_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o province_n yet_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o end_v they_o there_o for_o as_o much_o as_o it_o have_v be_v decree_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o their_o successor_n that_o the_o final_a decision_n of_o bishop_n cause_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o no_o other_o substitute_v in_o their_o place_n until_o their_o judgment_n be_v end_v at_o rome_n can_v there_o be_v a_o more_o full_a expression_n of_o the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o to_o profess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o sole_a supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o bishop_n or_o can_v there_o be_v a_o great_a imposture_n then_o to_o object_v this_o epistle_n of_o eleutherius_fw-la for_o the_o contrary_a sect_n iv_o whether_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v give_v to_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n privilege_n equal_a with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o object_n here_o 118._o here_o pag._n 118._o and_o often_o repeat_v that_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n do_v give_v privilege_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n equal_a with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n answer_n the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o absence_n of_o the_o pope_n legate_n &_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o of_o all_o the_o bishope_n of_o egypt_n at_o the_o suggestion_n of_o anatolius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n renew_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o 150._o father_n make_v in_o the_o first_o general_a council_n of_o that_o city_n which_o be_v that_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n of_o honour_n after_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o to_o this_o decree_n be_v add_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v equal_a privilege_n
paulus_n diaconus_fw-la 4._o diaconus_fw-la l._n 6._o e._n 4._o and_o other_o historian_n testify_v and_o you_o may_v read_v in_o baronius_n 692_o baronius_n anno_fw-la 692_o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr bellarmine_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr binius_fw-la 152._o binius_fw-la tom._n 3._o pag._n 152._o and_o canus_n ult._n canus_n l._n 5._o de_fw-la loc_fw-la c._n ult._n who_o right_o observe_v that_o as_o not_o by_o the_o pope_n so_o neither_o by_o any_o of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n nor_o by_o any_o authority_n of_o antiquity_n it_o have_v be_v receive_v as_o a_o true_a council_n but_o hold_v to_o be_v and_o so_o bede_n cis_fw-la bede_n loco_fw-la cis_fw-la call_v it_o erratica_fw-la synodus_fw-la a_o err_a synod_n in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o greek_a historian_n theophanes_n zonaras_n cedrenus_n glycas_n and_o other_o think_v best_a to_o bury_v it_o in_o silence_n never_o reckon_v it_o among_o the_o counsel_n nor_o make_v any_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o it_o and_o with_o great_a reason_n for_o how_o almighty_a god_n punish_v both_o the_o wicked_a patriarch_n calinicus_fw-la and_o the_o emperor_n who_o please_v may_v read_v in_o baronius_n 691._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 691._o all_o which_o be_v true_a as_o it_o be_v it_o must_v follow_v that_o you_o show_v great_a ignorance_n or_o else_o lack_v of_o conscience_n in_o attribute_v to_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n a_o decree_n of_o this_o impious_a conventicle_n and_o object_v it_o against_o a_o religious_a custom_n of_o the_o saturday_n fast_o in_o lent_n pious_o observe_v by_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o the_o apostle_n tyme._n if_o it_o be_v a_o abuse_n why_o do_v not_o the_o seven_o first_o ecumenical_a counsel_n take_v notice_n of_o it_o do_v not_o the_o greek_a author_n with_o one_o voice_n cry_v out_o that_o in_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n which_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n the_o variety_n of_o ancient_a custom_n use_v in_o diverse_a church_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v and_o do_v not_o s._n hierome_n be_v consult_v about_o this_o very_a custom_n of_o the_o saturday_n fast_o long_o before_o the_o trullan_n synod_n answer_n 28._o answer_n ep._n 28._o let_v every_o country_n abound_v in_o their_o own_o sense_n and_o reverence_v the_o precept_n of_o their_o forefather_n as_o apostolical_a law_n and_o do_v not_o s._n ambrose_n 6._o ambrose_n spond_n anno_o 384._o n._n 6._o in_o this_o very_a particular_a advice_n monica_n s._n augustine_n mother_n to_o observe_v the_o custom_n of_o whatsoever_o place_n she_o be_v in_o and_o do_v not_o both_o he_o and_o s._n augustine_n 86._o augustine_n apud_fw-la s._n aug._n ep_v 86._o profess_o prove_v against_o you_o and_o such_o as_o you_o be_v that_o whereas_o the_o eastern_a church_n from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n fast_v not_o but_o feast_v on_o saturdaye_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o western_a church_n both_o of_o they_o do_v it_o upon_o good_a and_o pious_a consideration_n declare_v by_o the_o ancient_a father_n 692._o father_n apud_fw-la baro._n a_o 692._o and_o do_v not_o s._n augustine_n cit_fw-la augustine_n loco_fw-la cit_fw-la show_v that_o variety_n to_o be_v a_o singular_a ornament_n to_o the_o church_n and_o do_v not_o the_o counsel_n of_o agatha_n 22._o agatha_n c._n 22._o and_o eliberis_n 26._o eliberis_n c._n 26._o subscribe_v to_o that_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a &_o other_o western_a church_n what_o authority_n then_o have_v those_o trullan_n bishop_n to_o make_v themselves_o judge_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n over_o who_o they_o have_v no_o authority_n as_o yourself_o well_o know_v and_o hereby_o be_v discover_v your_o folly_n that_o not_o content_v yourself_o with_o propose_v here_o this_o argument_n so_o impertinent_a and_o frivolous_a you_o repeat_v it_o afterward_o again_o say_v 221._o say_v pag._n 220._o 221._o that_o s._n augustine_n approve_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n wound_v the_o papacy_n and_o signify_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o then_o any_o peremptory_a authority_n to_o determine_v all_o cause_n for_o the_o roman_a church_n then_o do_v and_o still_o do_v allow_v variety_n of_o custom_n in_o diverse_a church_n though_o sometime_o contrary_a to_o her_o own_o when_o they_o be_v not_o repugnant_a to_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n such_o be_v the_o eastern_a custom_n of_o not_o observe_v the_o saturday-fast_a which_o therefore_o she_o allow_v how_o then_o do_v s._n augustine_n wound_v the_o papacy_n in_o allow_v the_o orientalâs_n to_o observe_v their_o custom_n since_o the_o roman_a church_n agree_v with_o he_o in_o allow_v the_o same_o to_o prove_v out_o of_o s._n augustine_n that_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o then_o authority_n to_o determine_v all_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n you_o shall_v have_v show_v that_o he_o hold_v endless_a and_o indeterminable_a any_o cause_n which_o she_o have_v once_o determine_v or_o that_o he_o allow_v what_o she_o have_v once_o condemn_v which_o while_o you_o do_v not_o you_o spend_v your_o breath_n in_o vain_a final_o whereas_o you_o ask_v 127._o ask_v pag._n 127._o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v at_o this_o day_n swallow_v and_o digest_v such_o a_o hot_a morsel_n as_o the_o trull_n a_o decree_n be_v you_o insinuate_v that_o then_o she_o can_v and_o do_v swallow_v that_o morsel_n which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v you_o have_v hear_v since_o neither_o sergius_n pope_n nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n can_v ever_o be_v bring_v to_o confirm_v that_o deceee_o or_o the_o synod_n that_o make_v it_o which_o alone_o show_v the_o transcendent_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o those_o day_n for_o want_v of_o who_o allowance_n and_o confirmation_n that_o synod_n be_v then_o and_o ever_o since_o have_v be_v reprove_v as_o a_o impious_a assembly_n who_o decree_n therefore_o you_o be_v ill_o advise_v to_o object_n in_o favour_n of_o your_o cause_n against_o the_o roman_a church_n chap_n xxiii_o doctor_n morton_n defend_v the_o heretical_a custom_n of_o the_o asian_a bishop_n against_o victor_n pope_n bellarmine_n and_o other_o catholic_a writer_n to_o prove_v the_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n practise_v over_o the_o eastern_a church_n in_o the_o first_o age_n after_o christ_n among_o other_o example_n allege_v the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n pronounce_v by_o victor_n pope_n against_o polycrates_n and_o many_o other_o asian_a bishop_n for_o not_o celebrate_v the_o feast_n of_o easter_n upon_o the_o sunday_n as_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v but_o according_a to_o the_o jewish_a computation_n at_o the_o full_a moon_n of_o march_n on_o what_o day_n soever_o it_o sell_v whereas_o witness_n eusebius_n 22._o eusebius_n lib._n 5._o hist_o c._n 22._o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n insist_v in_o the_o apostolical_a tradition_n and_o custom_n do_v never_o observe_v their_o easter_n on_o any_o other_o day_n then_o that_o on_o which_o our_o lord_n arise_v from_o death_n which_o be_v on_o sunday_n and_o so_o it_o be_v decree_v to_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o counsel_n of_o palestine_n of_o rome_n of_o pontus_n of_o france_n of_o osraena_fw-la of_o achaia_n and_o of_o other_o bishop_n almost_o innumerable_a ibid._n innumerable_a euseb_n ibid._n to_o which_o i_o add_v out_o of_o tertullian_n 53._o tertullian_n de_fw-fr praescrip_n c._n 53._o that_o blastus_n by_o persuade_v the_o observation_n of_o that_o jewish_a custom_n do_v endeavour_v to_o bring_v judaisme_n again_o into_o the_o church_n which_o also_o eusebius_n testify_v say_v 14._o say_v l._n 5._o hish_o c._n 14._o blastus_n have_v draw_v many_o into_o error_n do_v labour_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o new_a sect_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o truth_n upon_o these_o ground_n victor_n excommunicate_v he_o and_o the_o asian_a bishop_n for_o their_o obstinate_a defence_n of_o that_o custom_n which_o pius_n his_o predecessor_n have_v forbid_v you_o object_n 130._o object_n pag._n 130._o that_o the_o asian_a bishop_n stand_v out_o a_o long_a time_n against_o victor_n and_o contemn_v his_o excommunication_n and_o that_o polycrates_n plead_v their_o cause_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o pope_n victor_n allege_v that_o they_o have_v receive_v their_o custom_n from_o s._n john_n who_o lean_v a_o our_o lord_n breast_n that_o it_o be_v practise_v by_o philip_n the_o apostle_n and_o continue_v by_o polycarp_n thraseas_n and_o sagonius_n all_o of_o they_o bishop_n and_o martyr_n and_o that_o polycrates_n himself_o have_v live_v 65._o year_n in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o faithful_a be_v nothing_o move_v with_o those_o terror_n mean_v of_o excommunication_n which_o be_v urge_v against_o he_o and_o the_o rest_n and_o you_o add_v 131._o add_v pag._n 131._o out_o of_o eusebius_n that_o this_o act_n of_o victor_n do_v not_o please_v all_o other_o bishop_n who_o do_v great_o reprove_v he_o for_o trouble_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n
apud_fw-la author_n cit_fw-la that_o he_o with_o they_o all_o may_v rejoice_v in_o the_o peace_n restore_v to_o the_o church_n by_o his_o mean_n and_o in_o another_o to_o xistus_fw-la his_o successor_n 4._o successor_n apud_fw-la euseb_n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 4._o he_o declare_v the_o pope_n authority_n over_o all_o those_o bishop_n beseech_v he_o to_o pardon_v their_o offence_n &_o restore_v they_o to_o his_o communion_n i_o write_v to_o stephen_n say_v he_o a_o epistle_n for_o all_o those_o bishop_n to_o conclude_v you_o add_v another_o falsehood_n say_v 135._o say_v pag._n 135._o that_o we_o grant_v stephen_n pope_n to_o have_v excommunicate_v not_o only_o firmilianus_n with_o other_o eastern_a bishop_n but_o also_o s._n cyprian_n and_o you_o prove_v it_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o cassander_n and_o heretical_a and_o prohibit_v author_n who_o you_o contrary_a to_o your_o own_o knowledge_n cite_v as_o a_o catholic_a writer_n that_o so_o you_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n to_o call_v his_o lie_n our_o confession_n as_o here_o you_o do_v and_o indeed_o what_o man_n of_o common_a sense_n can_v persuade_v himself_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v honour_v s._n cyprian_n as_o a_o glorious_a saint_n and_o martyr_n as_o she_o do_v if_o he_o have_v die_v out_o of_o her_o communion_n and_o especial_o if_o he_o have_v contemn_v her_o excommunication_n last_o i_o must_v advertise_v you_o of_o another_o absurdity_n while_o you_o tell_v we_o 138._o we_o pag._n 138._o that_o we_o shall_v advise_v in_o this_o case_n rather_o with_o firmilianus_n a_o bishop_n live_v in_o the_o day_n of_o s._n cyprian_n then_o with_o s._n augustine_n who_o come_v 150._o year_n after_o for_o this_o be_v to_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o must_v rather_o believe_v firmilianus_n a_o party_n and_o for_o a_o time_n guilty_a both_o of_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o quarta_fw-la decimans_fw-la &_o of_o rebaptisation_n then_o s._n augustine_n a_o orthodox_n doctor_n and_o a_o impartial_a witness_n but_o yet_o if_o we_o advise_v with_o firmilianus_n he_o will_v condemn_v you_o 1._o because_o he_o retract_v his_o error_n before_o his_o death_n return_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o witness_n s._n basil_n 29._o basil_n de_fw-fr spir._n s._n ad_fw-la amphil._n c._n 29._o be_v admit_v among_o the_o catholic_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n hold_v against_o paulus_n samosatenus_fw-la and_o 2._o because_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o cyprian_a he_o acknowledge_v stephen_n to_o be_v successor_n of_o s._n peter_n on_o who_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v lay_v and_o the_o reason_n which_o he_o yield_v for_o his_o not_o obey_v stephen_n be_v that_o he_o must_v rather_o obey_v god_n than_o man_n 198._o man_n extat_fw-la apud_fw-la pamel_n pag._n 198._o which_o be_v a_o reason_n not_o to_o be_v give_v but_o by_o one_o that_o know_v himself_o bind_v to_o obey_v he_o that_o command_v if_o his_o command_n be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o commandment_n of_o god_n as_o he_o think_v stephens_n to_o be_v though_o erroneous_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v chap._n xxv_o other_o argument_n of_o doctor_n morton_n our_o of_o s._n cyprian_n answer_v from_o this_o your_o main_n argument_n of_o the_o opposition_n of_o firmilianus_n and_o s._n cyprian_n you_o pass_v to_o other_o objection_n show_v as_o you_o say_v 4._o say_v pag._n 134._o in_o tit_n sect_n 4._o the_o full_a opposition_n of_o s._n cyprian_a and_o other_o bishop_n against_o stephen_n b._n of_o rome_n but_o see_v you_o acknowledge_v alibi_fw-la acknowledge_v pag._n 291._o &_o alibi_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n to_o have_v be_v pure_a and_o free_a from_o error_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 600._o year_n and_o the_o pope_n that_o live_v in_o s._n cyprian_n time_n to_o be_v glorious_a saint_n and_o martyr_n of_o christ_n 172.178.181.287_o christ_n pag_n 172.178.181.287_o with_o what_o conscience_n do_v you_o make_v s._n cyprian_n full_o opposite_a to_o they_o and_o to_o differ_v in_o master_n of_o faith_n from_o they_o for_o what_o else_o be_v that_o but_o to_o make_v s._n cyprian_n a_o heretic_n that_o so_o he_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v like_a to_o yourself_o now_o to_o your_o objection_n of_o the_o full_a opposition_n of_o s._n cyprian_n to_o pope_n stephen_n the_o first_o be_v 134._o be_v pag._n 134._o that_o s._n cyprian_n impugn_a the_o pope_n pretend_a power_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n in_o proof_n whereof_o you_o produce_v ignorant_o the_o example_n of_o fortunatus_n and_o felicissimus_n for_o they_o appeal_v not_o to_o pope_n stephen_n but_o to_o cornelius_n between_o who_o and_o stephen_n sit_v lucius_n another_o pope_n again_o the_o objection_n be_v impertinent_a for_o the_o definition_n of_o counsel_n confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o pope_n themselves_o ordain_v that_o mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o faith_n and_o of_o bishop_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a but_o that_o minor_a cause_n that_o be_v of_o the_o life_n &_o manner_n of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v final_o sentence_v &_o end_v in_o their_o own_o province_n by_o their_o bishop_n and_o metropolitan_o or_o by_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o province_n this_o be_v declare_v by_o s._n augustine_n who_o speak_v of_o cecilianus_n b._n of_o carthage_n that_o have_v be_v condemn_v in_o africa_n by_o a_o council_n of_o 70._o bishop_n say_v 162_o say_v ep._n 162_o there_o be_v no_o question_n then_o of_o priest_n or_o deacon_n or_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n but_o of_o the_o colleague_n that_o be_v so_o say_v of_o bishop_n who_o may_v reserve_v their_o cause_n entire_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o other_o colleague_n and_o principal_o of_o the_o church_n apostolic_a and_o therefore_o that_o cecilian_a may_v have_v contemn_v the_o multitude_n of_o his_o enemy_n conspire_v against_o he_o for_o as_o much_o as_o he_o see_v himself_o unite_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o which_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v this_o show_v the_o futility_n of_o your_o objection_n for_o fortunatus_n and_o felicissimus_n be_v not_o bishop_n but_o simple_a priest_n who_o have_v be_v judge_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o have_v appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o therefore_o cornelius_n reject_v their_o appeal_n and_o excommunicate_v they_o as_o s._n cyprian_n declare_v in_o that_o very_a epistle_n which_o you_o object_n and_o return_v felicissimus_n back_o into_o africa_n with_o other_o his_o associate_n send_v by_o fortunatus_n for_o fortunatus_n himself_o go_v not_o in_o person_n to_o rome_n as_o you_o mistake_v but_o send_v felicissimus_n with_o other_o schismatic_n like_o himself_o and_o that_o s._n cyprian_n by_o complain_v to_o pope_n cornelius_n of_o these_o rebellious_a sugitiââs_n do_v not_o deny_v his_o power_n of_o appeal_n not_o the_o subjection_n of_o the_o african_a church_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n his_o word_n in_o that_o very_a epistle_n 55._o epistle_n ep._n 55._o three_o line_n before_o to_o go_v no_o further_o plain_o declare_v when_o speak_v of_o these_o schismatic_n he_o say_v they_o presume_v to_o sail_v to_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o principal_a church_n from_o whence_o sacerdotal_a unity_n be_v derive_v and_o to_o carry_v better_n from_o schismatical_a and_o profane_a person_n not_o have_v in_o mind_n that_o the_o roman_n be_v they_o who_o faith_n be_v praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o to_o who_o unfaithfulnes_n can_v have_v no_o access_n your_o second_o objection_n be_v 134._o be_v pag._n 134._o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n do_v deny_v to_o any_o whosoever_o the_o title_n of_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n this_o be_v a_o untruth_n for_o the_o word_n be_v not_o of_o the_o council_n but_o of_o s._n cyprian_n who_o speak_v only_o of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n of_o africa_n assemble_v with_o he_o in_o that_o council_n and_o to_o they_o only_o he_o direct_v his_o speech_n wish_v they_o to_o deliver_v their_o opinion_n free_o without_o regard_n to_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o as_o their_o primate_n have_v over_o they_o but_o in_o what_o sense_n soever_o you_o take_v the_o word_n they_o be_v of_o no_o force_n as_o be_v utter_v in_o a_o erroneous_a council_n which_o the_o church_n have_v condemn_v which_o s._n augustine_n tot_fw-la augustine_n l._n 6._o the_o baptism_n per_fw-la tot_fw-la have_v confute_v &_o from_o which_o s._n cyprian_n himself_o afterward_o disclaim_v retract_v his_o error_n your_o three_o be_v 134._o be_v pag._n 134._o that_o s._n cyprian_n will_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o name_n of_o pope_n per_fw-la antonomasiam_fw-la to_o be_v proper_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o we_o teach_v because_o at_o the_o time_n of_o his_o martyrdom_n be_v demand_v of_o the_o proconsul_n be_v thou_o he_o who_o the_o christian_n call_v their_o pope_n he_o answer_v
be_v direct_v to_o the_o holy_a and_o venerable_a pope_n innocentius_n and_o we_o likewise_o have_v write_v from_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n in_o numidia_n to_o the_o same_o apostolic_a see_n and_o what_o do_v they_o write_v we_o hope_v say_v the_o council_n 92._o council_n aug._n ep_v 92._o these_o man_n which_o hold_v so_o perverse_a &_o pernicious_a opinion_n will_v soon_o yield_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o your_o holiness_n draw_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n by_o help_n of_o the_o mercy_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus-christ_n who_o vouchsafe_v to_o govern_v you_o consult_v with_o he_o and_o to_o hear_v you_o pray_v unto_o he_o to_o this_o epistle_n of_o the_o council_n innocentius_n answer_v 93._o answer_v aug._n ep_v 93._o you_o provide_v diligent_o and_o worthy_o for_o the_o apostolic_a honour_n etc._n etc._n follow_v in_o the_o consultation_n of_o difficult_a thing_n the_o form_n of_o the_o ancient_a rule_n which_o you_o know_v as_o well_o as_o i_o to_o have_v be_v always_o observe_v by_o the_o whole_a world_n but_o i_o omit_v this_o for_o i_o think_v it_o be_v not_o unknown_a to_o your_o wisdom_n for_o why_o else_o do_v you_o confirm_v this_o by_o your_o deed_n but_o because_o you_o know_v that_o answer_n do_v always_o flow_v from_o the_o apostolical_a fountain_n throughout_o all_o country_n to_o those_o that_o ask_v they_o and_o especial_o as_o often_o as_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v in_o question_n i_o conceive_v that_o all_o our_o brethren_n and_o fellow-bishop_n ought_v not_o to_o refer_v what_o may_v be_v profitable_a in_o common_a to_o all_o church_n to_o any_o but_o to_o peter_n that_o be_v to_o the_o author_n of_o their_o name_n and_o dignity_n as_o your_o dilection_n have_v do_v if_o you_o answer_v that_o innocentius_n write_v this_o but_o speak_v untrue_o in_o his_o own_o cause_n s._n augustine_n will_v satisfy_v you_o who_o high_o praise_v both_o these_o answer_n of_o he_o upon_o this_o affair_n say_v s._n augustine_n 106._o augustine_n ep._n 106._o relation_n be_v send_v from_o the_o two_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n to_o the_o apostolical_a see_v etc._n etc._n and_o beside_o the_o relation_n of_o the_o counsel_n we_o write_v also_o private_a letter_n to_o pope_n innocentius_n of_o bless_a memory_n in_o which_o we_o discourse_v more_o large_o of_o the_o same_o subject_n and_o he_o answer_v we_o to_o every_o point_n as_o it_o be_v convenient_a and_o fit_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n shall_v answer_n and_o again_o 157._o again_o ep._n 157._o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la have_v be_v the_o author_n or_o most_o violent_a promotor_n of_o this_o new_a heresy_n they_o also_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o two_o episcopal_a counsel_n with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n who_o undertake_v the_o protection_n of_o his_o church_n have_v be_v condemn_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o two_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v pope_n innocentius_n and_o pope_n zozimus_n unless_o they_o reform_v themselves_o and_o do_v penance_n out_o of_o this_o it_o be_v evident_a 1._o that_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a tradition_n and_o custom_n that_o counsel_n shall_v send_v their_o decree_n to_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n 2._o and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o ordain_v not_o by_o humane_a but_o by_o divine_a sentence_n 3._o that_o all_o other_o church_n of_o the_o world_n compare_v to_o the_o roman_a be_v as_o stream_n that_o flow_v from_o their_o mother_n source_n and_o be_v to_o embrace_v as_o pure_a whatsoever_o doctrine_n she_o deliver_v and_o reject_v whatsoever_o she_o condemn_v 4._o that_o the_o father_n of_o both_o these_o counsel_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o pastor_n 5._o and_o that_o they_o do_v believe_v his_o authority_n to_o be_v take_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 6._o that_o christ_n guide_v he_o in_o his_o consultation_n and_o decree_n of_o faith_n 7._o that_o the_o custom_n &_o ancient_a rule_n bear_v that_o in_o doubt_n especial_o of_o faith_n the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v to_o be_v consult_v and_o nothing_o determine_v until_o answer_n have_v from_o thence_o now_o to_o your_o objection_n seqq_fw-la objection_n pag._n 141._o &_o seqq_fw-la that_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n deny_v any_o right_n of_o appeal_v from_o africa_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o in_o your_o eye_n be_v so_o forcible_a that_o you_o repeat_v it_o afterward_o again_o seqq_n again_o pag._n 321.322_o &_o seqq_n and_o descant_v on_o it_o at_o large_a against_o bellarmine_n who_o show_v 24._o show_v l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 24._o it_o to_o be_v whole_o impertinent_a and_o from_o the_o matter_n for_o the_o question_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v not_o of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n of_o who_o only_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n speak_v but_o of_o bishop_n for_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n which_o have_v declare_v 7._o declare_v can._n 4._o &_o 7._o that_o bishop_n may_v appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n have_v withal_o decree_v 27._o decree_v can._n 27._o that_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v by_o their_o own_o bishop_n &_o that_o if_o they_o conceive_v themselves_o to_o be_v wrong_v by_o they_o they_o appeal_v to_o other_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n and_o the_o same_o have_v be_v ordain_v not_o long_o before_o by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a seqq_fw-la nice_a julius_n ep_n 1.2.3_o apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 399._o &_o seqq_fw-la and_o afterward_o by_o s._n leo_n thessaly_n leo_n ep._n 84._o ad_fw-la anastas_n thessaly_n &_o s._n gregory_n 6._o gregory_n l._n 2._o indict_v 11._o ep_n 6._o ordain_v that_o mayor_n cause_n be_v judge_v in_o the_o first_o instance_n by_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n &_o by_o way_n of_o appeal_n by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o to_o go_v no_o further_o the_o same_o be_v answer_v by_o the_o holy_a pope_n innocentius_n to_o who_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n send_v their_o decree_n to_o be_v confirm_v 92._o confirm_v aug._n ep_v 92._o for_o when_o victricius_n b._n of_o rhoan_n desire_v to_o order_v the_o government_n of_o his_o church_n according_a to_o the_o roman_a discipline_n require_v instruction_n from_o he_o he_o 2._o he_o ep._n 2._o address_v unto_o he_o diverse_a rule_n to_o be_v observe_v of_o which_o the_o three_o be_v that_o if_o dissension_n arise_v between_o priest_n or_o other_o clerk_n of_o the_o inferior_a order_n they_o be_v to_o be_v judge_v &_o end_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o same_o province_n as_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a have_v determine_v and_o for_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n he_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n if_o they_o be_v mayor_n cause_n that_o be_v in_o question_n let_v they_o after_o the_o episcopal_a judgement_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o the_o synod_n of_o nice_a and_o the_o ancient_a custom_n ordain_v this_o epistle_n of_o innocentius_n be_v cite_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o tours_n 700._o year_n since_o and_o his_o very_a word_n concern_v the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v insert_v in_o form_n of_o a_o law_n into_o the_o capitulary_a of_o charlemagne_n and_o hincmarus_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o nicolas_n pope_n 3._o pope_n erodoard_v histor_n eccles_n rhem._n lib._n 3._o repeat_v the_o same_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n say_v we_o metropolitan_n travil_v in_o our_o provincial_a counsel_n have_v care_n after_o judgement_n to_o refer_v the_o mayor_n cause_v that_o be_v of_o faith_n and_o of_o mayor_n person_n that_o be_v of_o bishop_n to_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o sovereign_a see_n and_o speak_v of_o priest_n and_o inferior_a clerk_n let_v it_o not_o please_v god_n that_o we_o thould_v depise_v the_o privilege_n of_o the_o first_o and_o supreme_a see_v of_o the_o holy_a roman_a church_n as_o to_o weary_v your_o sovereign_a authority_n with_o all_o the_o controversy_n and_o quarrel_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o well_o of_o the_o superior_a as_o of_o the_o inferior_a order_n which_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n and_o other_o pope_n of_o the_o holy_a see_v of_o rome_n command_v to_o be_v determine_v in_o their_o own_o province_n from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n which_o you_o object_n against_o appeal_n to_o rome_n make_v nothing_o at_o all_o for_o your_o purpose_n your_o peremptory_a conclusion_n be_v 141._o be_v pag._n 141._o that_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n deni_v any_o right_n of_o appeal_n from_o africa_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n to_o make_v this_o good_a you_o shall_v have_v show_v that_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n forbid_v the_o appeal_n of_o bishop_n
that_o any_o such_o canon_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n i_o can_v but_o marvel_v at_o so_o great_a boldness_n for_o that_o those_o canon_n be_v extant_a in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v a_o truth_n prove_v not_o only_o by_o all_o edition_n of_o the_o counsel_n and_o all_o catholic_a writer_n but_o aver_v by_o the_o magdeburgian_o by_o osiander_n peter_n martyr_n and_o john_n caluin_n â_o caluin_n brereley_o protest_v apolog_fw-la tract_n 1._o sect_n 7._o subdia_fw-la â_o it_o be_v true_a that_o caluin_n accuse_v zozimus_n of_o heinous_a impudence_n and_o fraud_n in_o cite_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o that_o of_o nice_n but_o his_o accusation_n have_v no_o other_o ground_n then_o his_o hatred_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n for_o be_v it_o true_a as_o it_o be_v not_o that_o the_o canon_n which_o zozimus_n send_v be_v not_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o of_o sardica_n and_o that_o he_o have_v send_v they_o as_o canon_n of_o nice_a it_o have_v not_o be_v fraud_n or_o forgery_n in_o he_o as_o it_o be_v not_o in_o s._n matthew_n â_o matthew_n cap._n 27._o â_o to_o cite_v hieremy_n for_o zachary_n because_o it_o be_v the_o same_o spirit_n of_o god_n that_o speak_v in_o both_o those_o prophet_n and_o so_o likewise_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v of_o no_o less_o authority_n then_o that_o of_o nice_n again_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n consist_v in_o great_a part_n of_o the_o same_o father_n that_o the_o nicen_n council_n do_v and_o be_v a_o explication_n and_o confirmation_n thereof_o wherefore_o the_o sardican_a canon_n may_v not_o unfit_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o nicen_n canon_n as_o the_o constantinopolitan_a creed_n because_o it_o be_v a_o explication_n and_o confirmation_n of_o the_o nicen_n bear_v the_o name_n of_o the_o nicen_n creed_n moreover_o the_o ancient_a father_n number_v the_o counsel_n after_o that_o of_o nice_n ever_o reckon_v immediate_o the_o first_o of_o constantinople_n which_o they_o do_v upon_o no_o other_o ground_n then_o because_o they_o repute_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n to_o be_v a_o appendix_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o therefore_o as_o all_o one_o with_o it_o for_o these_o reason_n zozimus_n may_v without_o any_o forgery_n or_o falsehood_n have_v cite_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n under_o the_o title_n of_o nicen_n canon_n as_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n of_o the_o greek_n to_o cite_v the_o trullan_n canon_n under_o the_o title_n of_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o six_o general_a council_n because_o they_o pretend_v the_o trullan_n council_n to_o be_v a_o apendix_n and_o supplement_n of_o the_o six_o council_n general_a and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n s._n gregory_n of_o tours_n 33._o tours_n de_fw-fr gâst_fw-fr fran._n l._n 9_o c._n 33._o cite_v a_o canon_n of_o the_o councall_a of_o grangre_n without_o either_o fraud_n or_o forgery_n call_v it_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n because_o the_o council_n of_o gangre_n be_v a_o branch_n and_o slip_v of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a final_o and_o if_o these_o canon_n be_v not_o indeed_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o of_o sardica_n how_o can_v zozimus_n be_v think_v to_o have_v use_v any_o fraud_n or_o forgery_n in_o allege_v they_o as_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a since_o it_o have_v be_v more_o advantageous_a for_o his_o purpose_n against_o the_o african_n to_o have_v allege_v they_o as_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o five_o general_a council_n bear_v witness_v â_o witness_v act._n â_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a there_o be_v no_o other_o b._n of_o africa_n but_o only_o cecilian_a archbishop_n of_o carthage_n whereas_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v 30._o african_a bishop_n who_o be_v all_o name_v in_o particular_a by_o s._n athanasius_n 2._o athanasius_n apol._n 2._o which_o may_v have_v be_v a_o great_a motive_n to_o the_o african_n to_o submit_v to_o those_o canon_n as_o be_v approve_v and_o sign_v by_o so_o many_o bishop_n of_o their_o own_o nation_n but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o albeit_o the_o african_n have_v notice_n of_o a_o council_n hold_v at_o sardica_n yet_o as_o peron_n learned_o prove_v 49._o prove_v repliq._n l._n 1._o chap._n 49._o the_o donatist_n have_v suppress_v in_o africa_n the_o copy_n of_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n and_o those_o which_o the_o african_n have_v in_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o six_o council_n of_o carthage_n be_v copy_n of_o the_o anti-councell_n which_o sozomen_n mention_v 10._o mention_v l._n 3._o c._n 10._o hold_v by_o the_o arian_n at_o philippopolis_n near_o to_o sardica_n which_o they_o to_o gain_v credit_n to_o it_o and_o to_o their_o cause_n call_v the_o council_n of_o sardica_n and_o publish_v it_o in_o africa_n under_o that_o name_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o s._n augustine_n profess_v 34._o profess_v ep_v 163._o &_o conâ_n cresâon_n l._n 3._o c._n 34._o that_o he_o know_v no_o other_o council_n of_o sardica_n but_o that_o of_o the_o arian_n in_o which_o s._n athanasius_n be_v condemn_v whereas_o the_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n justify_v s._n athanasius_n and_o confirm_v the_o council_n of_o nice_a this_o true_a council_n of_o sardica_n you_o acknowledge_v to_o have_v be_v a_o general_a council_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n 14â_n church_n pag._n 144._o fin_n 14â_n this_o the_o centurist_n have_v copy_v out_o and_o insert_v into_o their_o four_o century_n and_o this_o it_o be_v in_o which_o as_o well_o they_o as_o also_o caluin_n peter_n martyr_n and_o osiander_n acknowledge_v the_o canon_n for_o appeal_n to_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v make_v whereof_o if_o the_o african_a father_n have_v notice_n they_o will_v not_o have_v reply_v to_o pope_n celestine_n celestin_n celestine_n ep._n ad_fw-la celestin_n we_o find_v it_o not_o to_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o the_o father_n in_o any_o synod_n that_o legate_n shall_v be_v send_v from_o your_o holiness_n to_o order_v matter_n here_o for_o it_o be_v express_o decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n 7._o sardica_n can._n 7._o that_o if_o it_o shall_v seem_v good_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n he_o may_v send_v legate_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o appellant_n in_o their_o own_o province_n this_o show_v how_o untrue_o you_o deny_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o sardica_n be_v extant_a any_o canon_n for_o appeal_v to_o rome_n and_o since_o your_o own_o brethren_n acknowledge_v they_o with_o what_o conscience_n do_v you_o justify_v the_o african_n in_o their_o denial_n of_o they_o or_o blame_v the_o pope_n for_o defend_v his_o right_n against_o they_o especial_o since_o you_o confess_v 304._o confess_v pag._n 289._o &_o 304._o that_o the_o african_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o their_o patriarch_n sect_n iu_o untruth_n and_o falsification_n of_o doctor_n morton_n discover_v and_o his_o objection_n answer_v first_o you_o object_n 145._o object_n pag._n 145._o that_o 217._o african_a bishop_n s_n augustine_n be_v a_o principal_a one_o show_v that_o the_o pope_n claim_n of_o appeal_v have_v no_o patronage_n from_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o rather_o that_o there_o be_v in_o that_o council_n another_o canon_n to_o control_v it_o and_o that_o make_v much_o against_o such_o appeal_n by_o determine_v that_o pope_n be_v so_o far_o remote_a from_o africa_n can_v not_o be_v so_o competent_a judge_n in_o such_o cause_n except_o say_v they_o some_o will_v think_v that_o god_n will_v inspire_v one_o singular_a man_n with_o justice_n and_o deny_v that_o grace_n to_o innumerable_a person_n assemble_v together_o in_o a_o synod_n these_o word_n sir_n be_v not_o of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a but_o of_o the_o african_a father_n in_o their_o epistle_n to_o celestine_n pope_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o mere_a delusion_n to_o object_v they_o as_o a_o canon_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n to_o control_v appeal_n to_o rome_n they_o speak_v not_o of_o matter_n of_o faith_n for_o the_o same_o father_n a_o little_a before_o have_v send_v to_o innocentius_n pope_n to_o confirm_v with_o his_o authority_n the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n which_o they_o have_v pronounce_v against_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la in_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n acknowledge_v â2_n acknowledge_v aug._n ep_v â2_n that_o god_n do_v guide_v he_o in_o his_o consultation_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o hope_v that_o those_o heretic_n will_v more_o easy_o yield_v to_o his_o authority_n draw_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n then_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o counsel_n wherefore_o in_o the_o word_n object_v they_o speak_v only_o of_o particular_a and_o personal_a cause_n of_o fact_n civil_a and_o criminal_a in_o which_o as_o those_o father_n declare_v witness_n be_v to_o
and_o osius_n admonish_v constantius_n the_o arian_n emperor_n intermeddle_v not_o o_o emperor_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n nor_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o command_v we_o in_o this_o kind_n but_o rather_o learn_v those_o thing_n from_o us._n to_o you_o god_n have_v commit_v the_o empere_n the_o affair_n of_o the_o church_n to_o us._n and_o as_o he_o that_o malicious_o carp_v at_o our_o government_n resist_v the_o ordinance_n of_o god_n so_o take_v you_o heed_n that_o in_o assume_v to_o yourself_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o church_n you_o make_v not_o yourself_o guilty_a of_o a_o most_o heinous_a crime_n for_o it_o be_v write_v give_v to_o cesar_n those_o thing_n which_o be_v caesar_n and_o those_o which_o be_v god_n to_o god_n the_o like_a reprehension_n be_v give_v to_o the_o same_o emperor_n by_o leontius_n that_o famous_a b._n of_o cesaraea_n who_o have_v be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o who_o cregorius_n presbyter_n â_o presbyter_n spoud_fw-mi anno_fw-la 32â_n ââ_o â_o term_v equal_a to_o the_o angel_n i_o wonder_v say_v he_o to_o constantius_n leouâ_n constantius_n suid._n in_o leouâ_n that_o you_o be_v appoint_v to_o order_n and_o governeone_fw-mi thing_n do_v meddle_v with_o other_o you_o be_v chief_a commander_n in_o military_a and_o civil_a affair_n and_o you_o presume_v to_o ordain_v what_o bishop_n shall_v do_v in_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o bishop_n alone_n and_o when_o the_o captain_n of_o the_o heretical_a emperor_n valens_n require_v the_o priest_n and_o deacon_n of_o edessa_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o emperor_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n represent_v to_o they_o that_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o resist_v so_o great_a a_o monarch_n eulogius_n a_o priest_n of_o the_o same_o city_n answer_v pleasant_o ââ_o pleasant_o theodor._n l._n 4._o hiât_n c._n ââ_o what_o have_v valens_n together_o with_o the_o empire_n get_v also_o the_o place_n and_o dignity_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o when_o dalmatius_n the_o tribune_n with_o a_o public_a notary_n be_v send_v by_o valentinian_n the_o young_a to_o summon_v s._n ambrose_n to_o a_o disputation_n with_o auxentius_n the_o arian_n bishop_n and_o other_o of_o his_o sect_n in_o the_o emperor_n palace_n before_o he_o and_o his_o courtier_n 3â_n courtier_n l._n â_o open_fw-mi 3â_n i_o answer_v say_v s._n ambrose_n to_o the_o emperor_n the_o same_o that_o your_o father_n of_o glorious_a memory_n not_o only_o answer_v in_o word_n upon_o like_a occasion_n but_o also_o establish_v by_o his_o law_n that_o in_o cause_n of_o faith_n and_o ecclesiastical_a order_n priests_z only_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o priest_n yea_o further_o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n shall_v be_v question_v for_o his_o manner_n this_o judgement_n shall_v likewise_o appertain_v to_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n when_o have_v you_o ever_o hear_v mâst_o clement_a emperor_n that_o lie_v man_n do_v judge_v of_o bishop_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n you_o be_v yet_o young_a in_o year_n you_o will_v by_o god_n grace_n and_o the_o maturity_n of_o age_n be_v better_o inform_v and_o than_o you_o will_v be_v able_a to_o judge_v what_o manner_n of_o bishop_n he_o be_v to_o be_v account_v that_o subject_n the_o right_a of_o priesthood_n to_o lay_v man_n your_o father_n be_v a_o man_n of_o ripe_a year_n say_v it_o belong_v not_o to_o i_o to_o be_v a_o judge_n among_o bishop_n and_o will_v your_o clemency_n now_o say_v that_o you_o ought_v to_o be_v their_o judge_n so_o s._n ambrose_n but_o what_o need_v we_o further_a proof_n do_v not_o constantine_n himself_o who_o here_o you_o object_n refuse_v to_o hear_v the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n answer_v 72._o answer_v ruffin_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o s._n greg._n l_o 4._o ep_n 72._o that_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o judge_v of_o emperor_n but_o not_o emperor_n to_o judge_v of_o bishop_n show_v thereby_o that_o he_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o have_v no_o power_n of_o a_o judge_n in_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n yea_o and_o this_o very_a fact_n of_o constantine_n which_o you_o object_n be_v so_o far_o from_o yield_v any_o precedent_n for_o secular_a prince_n to_o judge_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n that_o it_o manifest_o conclude_v the_o contrary_a for_o when_o the_o donatist_n require_v he_o to_o give_v they_o judge_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a b._n of_o carthage_n he_o stand_v amaze_v at_o their_o impudence_n he_o dare_v not_o say_v s._n augustine_n 166._o augustine_n ep._n 166._o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n and_o optatus_n parmen_fw-la optatus_n l._n 1._o cont_n parmen_fw-la he_o answer_v they_o with_o a_o spirit_n full_a of_o indignation_n you_o ask_v of_o i_o judgement_n in_o this_o world_n of_o i_o i_o say_v that_o do_v myself_o attend_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n you_o will_v have_v i_o to_o make_v myself_o a_o judge_n of_o the_o minister_n of_o christ_n i_o that_o do_v myself_o expect_v the_o judgement_n of_o christ._n wherefore_o though_o constantine_n at_o the_o importunity_n of_o the_o donatist_n grant_v they_o judge_n of_o the_o gaul_n as_o they_o require_v he_o do_v it_o not_o without_o make_v this_o protestation_n before_o hand_n that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o to_o meddle_v with_o the_o judgement_n of_o christ_n minister_n and_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o donatist_n who_o demand_v judge_n and_o the_o judge_n which_o constantine_n assign_v they_o as_o also_o constantine_n himself_o be_v then_o all_o actual_o present_a in_o france_n yet_o he_o cause_v the_o donatist_n together_o with_o the_o judge_n which_o he_o have_v give_v they_o to_o travail_v to_o rome_n that_o according_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n and_o law_n of_o the_o church_n 26._o church_n athan._n apol._n â_o sozom_n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o and_o see_v above_o chap._n 26._o the_o cause_n may_v be_v judge_v by_o the_o pope_n direction_n and_o under_o his_o presidency_n and_o this_o remission_n of_o the_o cause_n from_o his_o own_o court_n to_o the_o pope_n tribunal_n be_v not_o by_o way_n of_o commission_n or_o delegation_n from_o himself_o as_o from_o a_o superior_a judge_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o a_o inferior_a as_o you_o false_o suppose_v but_o by_o way_n of_o remission_n to_o he_o to_o who_o he_o know_v that_o judicature_n in_o right_a to_o belong_v for_o how_o can_v the_o emperor_n that_o profess_v himself_o to_o have_v no_o right_n of_o a_o judge_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n give_v power_n and_o commission_n unto_o other_o to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a wherefore_o although_o s._n augustine_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o donatists_n intention_n call_v this_o remission_n a_o delegation_n yet_o withal_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o reason_n of_o this_o delegation_n be_v because_o the_o emperor_n dare_v not_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o a_o bishop_n which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v not_o a_o delegation_n of_o authority_n and_o power_n but_o a_o relegation_n or_o remission_n of_o the_o cause_n to_o who_o the_o judgement_n thereof_o in_o right_n appertain_v nor_o do_v it_o import_n that_o he_o remit_v not_o this_o cause_n to_o the_o pope_n alone_o but_o to_o he_o and_o other_o bishop_n his_o colleague_n for_o he_o remit_v it_o not_o to_o they_o equal_o but_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o chief_a judge_n and_o precedent_n and_o to_o the_o other_o as_o to_o the_o pope_n assessor_n melchiade_n say_v s._n augustine_n 2._o augustine_n cont._n julian_n l._n â_o c._n 2._o bishop_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_n be_v precedent_n reticius_n be_v present_a as_o a_o judge_n with_o other_o and_o again_o 5._o again_o cont._n parmen_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 5._o by_o the_o arbitrement_n of_o constantine_n the_o cause_n be_v hear_v by_o bishop_n judge_n over_o who_o preside_v melchiade_n b._n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n behold_v how_o exact_o s._n augustine_n attribute_n to_o every_o one_o what_o belong_v unto_o they_o constantine_n be_v a_o arbitrator_n the_o other_o bishop_n present_a as_o judge_n assessor_n to_o melchiade_n and_o as_o witness_n of_o his_o proceed_n melchiade_n chief_a judge_n and_o precedent_n and_o therefore_o he_o as_o have_v full_a authority_n do_v not_o content_v himself_o with_o take_v for_o his_o assistant_n the_o three_o french_a bishop_n nominate_v by_o the_o emperor_n but_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n add_v to_o they_o other_o fifteen_o of_o italy_n who_o name_n optatus_n rehearse_v 1._o rehearse_v cont._n parmen_fw-la l._n 1._o whereas_o if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v absolute_a judge_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n but_o only_o by_o delegation_n from_o constantine_n he_o can_v not_o have_v add_v any_o other_o judge_n to_o those_o three_o which_o constantine_n nominate_v again_o his_o authority_n appear_v in_o this_o that_o none_o of_o the_o assistant_n but_o he_o in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o as_o precedent_n thereof_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n how_o innocent_a say_v s._n augustine_n ââ2_n augustine_n ep._n ââ2_n
with_o all_o that_o be_v commit_v to_o we_o be_v and_o will_v ever_o be_v obedient_a to_o you_o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o felix_n pope_n for_o as_o much_o as_o our_o predecessor_n and_o we_o have_v always_o receive_v assistance_n from_o your_o holy_a apostolic_a see_v and_o have_v have_v experience_n of_o the_o care_n you_o have_v of_o we_o we_o follow_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o canon_n fly_v for_o succour_n unto_o it_o as_o unto_o a_o mother_n from_o whence_o our_o predecessor_n have_v receive_v their_o order_n doctrine_n and_o relief_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n which_o by_o no_o mean_n we_o dare_v presume_v to_o do_v to_o wit_n to_o define_v matter_n of_o faith_n without_o consult_v you_o the_o canon_n command_v that_o in_o mayor_n cause_v nothing_o be_v determine_v without_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n etc._n etc._n for_o therefore_o christ_n have_v place_v you_o and_o your_o predecessor_n in_o the_o height_n of_o eminency_n and_o command_v you_o to_o have_v care_n of_o all_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o he_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n that_o it_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o bishop_n if_o therefore_o to_o appeal_v to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o his_o judge_n if_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o he_o power_n to_o restore_v the_o great_a patriarch_n to_o their_o see_z if_o to_o profess_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o bishop_n belong_v to_o he_o and_o that_o all_o mayor_n cause_n be_v to_o be_v refer_v to_o his_o tribunal_n if_o to_o believe_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v bishop_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o final_o if_o to_o profess_v actual_a and_o promise_v perpetual_a obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a be_v argument_n of_o s._n athanasius_n his_o belief_n of_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a &_o of_o his_o obligation_n to_o obey_v she_o and_o to_o live_v in_o union_n with_o she_o and_o in_o subjection_n to_o she_o then_o be_v you_o guilty_a of_o imposture_n in_o omit_v these_o and_o other_o pregnant_a testimony_n of_o the_o same_o kind_n extant_a in_o his_o second_o apology_n and_o object_v in_o lieu_n of_o they_o a_o false_a tale_n of_o liberius_n excommunicate_v athanasius_n devise_v by_o yourself_o to_o seduce_v your_o reader_n and_o hereby_o you_o be_v convince_v of_o another_o untruth_n in_o say_v 191._o say_v pag._n 191._o that_o athanasius_n seek_v not_o any_o union_n with_o felix_n who_o be_v pope_n instead_o of_o liberius_n for_o these_o his_o testimony_n show_v that_o he_o be_v in_o communion_n with_o he_o and_o acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o you_o say_v 190._o say_v pag._n 190._o and_o that_o impertinent_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n which_o be_v to_o prove_v s._n athanasius_n his_o no_o subjection_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o when_o we_o esteem_v felix_n to_o be_v the_o legitimat_fw-la pope_n and_o liberius_n a_o schismatic_n remove_v from_o the_o society_n of_o catholic_n and_o from_o his_o papal_a function_n we_o fight_v notable_o against_o our_o own_o principle_n which_o be_v 1._o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o pope_n together_o and_o 2._o that_o no_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v unless_o he_o appear_v to_o be_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n which_o if_o he_o be_v he_o cease_v to_o be_v pope_n without_o any_o judgement_n at_o all_o that_o there_o can_v be_v two_o pope_n together_o we_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o we_o nor_o do_v it_o happen_v otherwise_o in_o the_o case_n of_o liberius_n for_o when_o he_o return_v to_o the_o papacy_n it_o be_v by_o acceptation_n of_o the_o clergy_n &_o people_n of_o rome_n equivalent_a to_o a_o new_a election_n and_o this_o not_o until_o after_o felix_n his_o death_n for_o as_o sozomen_n prudent_o observe_v 14._o observe_v l._n 4._o c._n 14._o god_n by_o his_o special_a providence_n call_v felix_n out_o of_o this_o life_n soon_o after_o liberius_n return_v to_o rome_n lest_o the_o see_v of_o peter_n shall_v be_v defame_v with_o the_o note_n of_o schism_n two_o pope_n govern_v at_o once_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n the_o second_o principle_n be_v not_o we_o but_o a_o ignorance_n of_o you_o for_o a_o pope_n cease_v to_o be_v a_o catholic_a &_o consequent_o fall_v from_o his_o papacy_n not_o only_o by_o public_a profession_n of_o heresy_n but_o also_o by_o make_v public_a profession_n of_o schism_n and_o outward_a communion_n with_o heretic_n though_o in_o his_o hart_n he_o detest_v their_o doctrine_n for_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a it_o be_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o believe_v the_o catholic_a faith_n inward_o but_o also_o to_o make_v profession_n thereof_o outward_o abandon_v the_o communion_n of_o heretic_n wherefore_o the_o syllogism_n which_o here_o you_o make_v 191._o make_v pag._n 190._o sin_n 191._o conclude_v nothing_o the_o minor_a proposition_n that_o liberius_n notwithstanding_o his_o consent_n to_o the_o condemnation_n of_o athanasius_n and_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n be_v a_o catholics_n bishop_n be_v absolute_o false_a and_o whereas_o you_o profess_v to_o set_v down_o this_o minor_a as_o the_o word_n of_o bellarmine_n you_o falsify_v he_o for_o albeit_o he_o say_v that_o if_o a_o pope_n become_v a_o manifest_a heretic_n he_o cease_v eo_fw-la ipso_fw-la to_o be_v pope_n yet_o in_o the_o same_o place_n sententia_fw-la place_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 30._o §._o eadem_fw-la est_fw-la sententia_fw-la he_o sufficient_o express_v that_o not_o only_a heretic_n but_o also_o schismatics_n be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o loose_v all_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n over_o those_o which_o be_v in_o the_o church_n sect_n iu_o s._n basills_n belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v and_o doctor_n mortons_n objection_n answer_v it_o seem_v to_o we_o say_v s._n basil_n 52._o basil_n ep._n 52._o write_v to_o athanasius_n to_o be_v to_o good_a purpose_n that_o we_o write_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n that_o he_o consider_v the_o affair_n of_o these_o part_n and_o give_v his_o judgement_n to_o the_o end_n that_o be_v there_o be_v difficulty_n in_o send_v from_o thence_o person_n by_o a_o common_a and_o synodical_a decree_n he_o may_v use_v his_o authority_n and_o choose_v man_n capable_a of_o the_o labour_n of_o such_o a_o journey_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o have_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimin_n they_o may_v disannul_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v do_v by_o force_n bellarmine_n 15._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 15._o bring_v this_o testimony_n you_o except_v against_o he_o as_o pervert_v s._n basil_n by_o false_a translation_n which_o you_o prove_v out_o of_o baronius_n for_o where_o bellarmine_n translate_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la videas_fw-la that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n see_v or_o view_v our_o affair_n baronius_n render_v ut_fw-la res_fw-la nostras_fw-la consideret_fw-la that_o he_o consider_v our_o affair_n but_o who_o see_v not_o this_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a cavil_n for_o what_o difference_n be_v there_o between_o entreat_v the_o pope_n to_o take_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n into_o his_o consideration_n as_o baronius_n read_v or_o to_o see_v and_o look_v into_o they_o as_o bellarmine_n translate_v whether_o you_o follow_v the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o s_n basil_n think_v it_o a_o fit_a way_n to_o redress_v the_o calamity_n of_o those_o church_n that_o the_o pope_n shall_v take_v they_o into_o his_o consideration_n or_o have_v a_o vigilant_a eye_n over_o they_o the_o require_v whereof_o from_o he_o live_v in_o a_o country_n so_o remote_a and_o in_o another_o patriarkship_n show_v that_o s._n basil_n believe_v some_o charge_n of_o visit_v those_o church_n to_o belong_v to_o he_o superior_a to_o that_o which_o the_o eastern_a patriarch_n have_v nor_o do_v your_o answer_n satisfy_v say_v 195._o say_v pag._n 195._o he_o require_v not_o from_o the_o pope_n any_o help_n or_o visitation_n of_o dominion_n or_o jurisdiction_n but_o only_o of_o confortation_n of_o love_v and_o brotherly_a consideration_n hope_v that_o the_o persuasion_n of_o stranger_n especial_o be_v endue_v with_o god_n grace_n will_v be_v more_o prevalent_a with_o the_o eastern_a people_n than_o the_o counsel_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n for_o this_o evasion_n be_v convince_v of_o falsehood_n by_o the_o very_a word_n of_o s._n basil_n it_o be_v fit_a say_v he_o 52._o he_o ep._n 52._o that_o we_o beseech_v the_o pope_n to_o show_v his_o authority_n in_o the_o business_n send_v man_n that_o may_v bring_v with_o they_o the_o act_n of_o arimin_n and_o disannul_v the_o thing_n do_v by_o force_n and_o immediate_o after_o he_o profess_v himself_o ready_a to_o be_v correct_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n if_o
her_o faith_n be_v build_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n promise_v 16.18_o promise_v math._n 16.18_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o she_o and_o 22.32_o and_o luc._n 22.32_o that_o the_o faith_n of_o peter_n see_v shall_v never_o fail_v wherefore_o as_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o christ_n shall_v fail_v in_o the_o performance_n of_o his_o promise_n so_o be_v it_o impossible_a that_o the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v not_o be_v perpetual_a last_o you_o bring_v example_n of_o antiquity_n 125._o antiquity_n pag._n 125._o require_v union_n with_o other_o church_n as_o well_o as_o with_o the_o roman_a this_o argument_n you_o have_v prosecute_v before_o 100.101_o before_o pag_n 100.101_o out_o of_o your_o own_o observation_n of_o antiquity_n with_o many_o example_n some_o of_o which_o you_o repeat_v here_o add_v other_o unto_o they_o 229.230_o they_o pag._n 229.230_o the_o answer_n you_o have_v receive_v 9_o receive_v chap._n 15._o sect_n 9_o to_o which_o i_o add_v that_o your_o argument_n be_v as_o if_o you_o persuade_v rebel_n to_o join_v not_o only_o with_o their_o sovereign_n but_o also_o with_o other_o his_o loyal_a subject_n i_o shall_v lay_v to_o your_o charge_n that_o you_o hold_v loyal_a subject_n to_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n with_o their_o sovereign_n it_o be_v true_a that_o while_o subject_n stand_v loyal_a to_o their_o prince_n he_o that_o join_v in_o loyalty_n with_o they_o be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o he_o be_v a_o loyal_a subject_n be_v not_o because_o he_o join_v with_o they_o but_o because_o both_o he_o and_o they_o join_v in_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o their_o sovereign_n in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v true_a that_o whatsoever_o church_n be_v in_o communion_n with_o other_o orthodoxal_a church_n that_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a in_o which_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a have_v always_o flourish_v 162._o flourish_v aug._n ep_v 162._o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v orthodoxal_a and_o catholic_a church_n but_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o be_v to_o be_v account_v catholic_a be_v not_o for_o their_o agreement_n among_o themselves_o but_o because_o they_o all_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o head_n and_o original_a source_n of_o catholic_a communion_n for_o which_o cause_n s._n cyprian_a explicate_v what_o a_o catholic_a be_v make_v no_o mention_n of_o other_o apostolical_a church_n which_o be_v extant_a in_o his_o day_n but_o absolute_o define_v 8._o define_v l._n 4._o ep._n 2._o &_o 8._o that_o to_o be_v a_o catholic_a be_v to_o communicate_v with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o s._n ambrose_n satyri_fw-la ambrose_n orat._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la that_o to_o agree_v with_o catholic_a bishop_n be_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n from_o which_o say_v he_o imperat._n he_o l._n 1._o ep_v 4._o ad_fw-la imperat._n the_o right_n of_o venerable_a communion_n do_v flow_v unto_o all_o other_o church_n she_o be_v the_o source_n and_o they_o stream_n derive_v from_o she_o as_o from_o their_o native_a fountain_n 91._o fountain_n innocent_n apud_fw-la aug._n ap_fw-mi 91._o and_o s._n irenaeus_n 3._o irenaeus_n l._n 3._o c._n 3._o pronounce_v it_o necessary_a for_o all_o church_n not_o except_v the_o apostolical_a to_o agree_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n by_o reason_n of_o she_o more_o mighty_a principality_n that_o be_v because_o her_o say_v can_v fail_v she_o be_v the_o rock_n on_o which_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v build_v damas_n build_v hieron_n ep._n 57_o add_v damas_n and_o against_o which_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v donati_n prevail_v aug_n in_o psal_n count_v partem_fw-la donati_n as_o they_o have_v do_v against_o all_o the_o other_o apostolical_a church_n sect_n ix_o s._n hilary_n b._n of_o arles_n acknowledge_v himself_o subject_a to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n the_o last_o witness_n you_o bring_v 225._o bring_v pag._n 225._o to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v s._n hilary_n b._n of_o arles_n in_o france_n who_o though_o he_o deserve_v great_a commendation_n for_o his_o labour_n against_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o defence_n of_o s._n augustine_n work_n yet_o for_o a_o time_n he_o stain_v his_o glory_n when_o exceed_v the_o limit_n of_o due_a moderation_n and_o insist_v in_o the_o step_n of_o patroclus_n a_o invasor_n of_o that_o see_v he_o presume_v to_o usurp_v to_o himself_o the_o right_n of_o the_o metropolitan_o of_o vienna_n and_o narbona_n ordain_v &_o depose_v bishop_n in_o their_o district_n a_o thing_n which_o no_o way_n belong_v to_o he_o and_o have_v be_v forbid_v by_o the_o council_n of_o turin_n 13._o turin_n c._n 13._o this_o be_v complain_v of_o against_o patroclus_n first_o to_o boniface_n and_o then_o to_o celestine_n pope_n &_o last_o to_o the_o bless_a pope_n leo_n against_o hilary_n that_o he_o have_v presume_v to_o depose_v celidonius_n a_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o vienna_n and_o he_o be_v still_o live_v to_o ordain_v proiectus_fw-la in_o his_o place_n he_o be_v so_o far_o from_o persist_v in_o this_o crime_n to_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n that_o he_o go_v himself_o in_o person_n to_o rome_n in_o a_o most_o submissive_a and_o penitent_a manner_n to_o make_v satisfaction_n for_o his_o offence_n he_o undertake_v say_v the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n 38._o life_n apud_fw-la cuiac_n obseruat_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 38._o a_o journey_n to_o rome_n on_o foot_n and_o enter_v into_o the_o city_n without_o any_o horse_n or_o beast_n of_o carriage_n and_o present_v himself_o to_o pope_n leo_n reverent_o offer_v he_o obedience_n and_o humble_o entreat_v that_o he_o may_v ordain_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n after_o the_o accustom_a manner_n etc._n etc._n but_o if_o it_o be_v not_o his_o will_n he_o will_v not_o importune_v and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n he_o apply_v himself_o whole_o to_o appease_v the_o spirit_n of_o leo_n with_o a_o prostrate_a humility_n have_v plead_v his_o cause_n &_o be_v find_v guilty_a he_o depart_v from_o rome_n without_o stay_v his_o sentence_n and_o return_v present_o to_o arles_n never_o lay_v any_o further_a claim_n to_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o former_o he_o have_v usurp_v as_o appear_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n which_o leo_n write_v against_o he_o to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o province_n of_o vienna_n 89._o vienna_n leo_fw-la ep._n 89._o wherein_o have_v full_o declare_v and_o prove_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o be_v institute_v by_o christ_n himself_o he_o annul_v what_o have_v be_v injust_o presume_v by_o hilary_n and_o prescribe_v a_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v in_o the_o creation_n of_o bishop_n and_o lest_o hilary_n shall_v raise_v tumult_n seek_v to_o support_v his_o cause_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n as_o former_o he_o have_v do_v leo_n require_v of_o valentinian_n the_o three_o that_o if_o any_o such_o attempt_n be_v make_v he_o will_v cause_v it_o to_o be_v suppress_v by_o aetius_n commander_n of_o the_o soldier_n in_o france_n this_o the_o emperor_n perform_v write_v to_o aetius_n that_o famous_a rescript_n which_o afterward_o theodosius_n the_o young_a insert_v in_o his_o new_a constitution_n intitul_a it_o the_o law_n of_o theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n in_o which_o he_o relate_v the_o whole_a story_n of_o hilary_n and_o profess_v his_o great_a veneration_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o of_o the_o pope_n supreme_a authority_n over_o all_o church_n &_o bishop_n and_o particular_o his_o right_n to_o convent_n they_o before_o he_o and_o prescribe_v law_n unto_o they_o ordain_v withal_o that_o if_o any_o bishop_n be_v summon_v by_o he_o shall_v refuse_v to_o appear_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o province_n shall_v enforce_v he_o to_o obey_v to_o the_o end_n say_v he_o that_o in_o all_o thing_n that_o reverence_n be_v observe_v which_o our_o parent_n bare_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o be_v the_o history_n of_o hilary_n true_o relate_v out_o of_o the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o leo_n &_o out_o of_o the_o rescript_n of_o valentinian_n be_v it_o not_o then_o unshamefastnesse_n in_o you_o to_o say_v 225._o say_v pag._n 225._o that_o we_o without_o any_o proof_n will_v make_v you_o believe_v that_o at_o length_n hilary_n yield_v to_o the_o pope_n make_v no_o further_a apology_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o cause_n what_o be_v the_o relation_n make_v by_o the_o author_n of_o his_o life_n no_o proof_n be_v the_o epistle_n of_o that_o renown_a pope_n s._n leo_n the_o great_a no_o proof_n be_v the_o rescript_n of_o valentinian_n insert_v into_o the_o civil_a law_n by_o theodosius_n &_o never_o doubt_v of_o by_o any_o man_n of_o learning_n or_o judgement_n no_o proof_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o jacobus_n
against_o this_o epistle_n to_o be_v of_o no_o force_n 3._o you_o except_v 28_n except_v pag._n 28_n against_o the_o epistle_n of_o pius_n because_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v he_o to_o have_v command_v that_o if_o any_o drop_n be_v shed_v out_o of_o the_o chalice_n in_o the_o eucharist_n they_o shall_v be_v lick_v up_o and_o the_o board_n scrape_v you_o believe_v not_o this_o because_o you_o believe_v not_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n but_o think_v it_o reverence_n enough_o if_o your_o clerk_n take_v home_o your_o bread_n that_o remain_v and_o crimble_a it_o into_o his_o pottage_n and_o drink_v up_o the_o wine_n merry_o with_o his_o guest_n at_o dinner_n and_o yet_o some_o of_o you_o tell_v the_o people_n it_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n howsoever_o your_o argument_n be_v whole_o from_o the_o matter_n for_o this_o command_n of_o pius_n be_v not_o in_o his_o first_o epistle_n which_o you_o deceitful_o cite_v in_o your_o margin_n nor_o in_o any_o of_o his_o epistle_n but_o in_o his_o decree_n which_o the_o church_n approve_v 11._o approve_v breviar_n roman_n jul._n 11._o from_o whence_o to_o infer_v that_o his_o epistle_n be_v apocryphal_a be_v a_o consequence_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v not_o grant_v &_o i_o be_o sure_a every_o one_o will_v see_v to_o be_v absurd_a the_o error_n which_o out_o of_o baronius_n you_o mention_v 282._o mention_v pag._n 282._o in_o two_o of_o pius_n his_o epistle_n may_v easy_o creep_v into_o the_o copy_n by_o negligence_n or_o mistake_v of_o the_o scribe_n and_o therefore_o be_v no_o sufficient_a argument_n to_o disauthorize_v they_o and_o much_o less_o the_o rest_n in_o which_o there_o be_v no_o such_o mistake_n 4._o you_o reject_v ibid._n reject_v ibid._n the_o epistle_n of_o soter_n and_o alexander_n because_o you_o can_v think_v the_o use_n of_o incense_n at_o the_o altar_n nor_o the_o expiation_n of_o small_a offence_n by_o holy_a water_n to_o be_v so_o ancient_a for_o your_o better_a instruction_n concern_v the_o ancient_a use_n of_o incense_n at_o the_o altar_n i_o remit_v you_o to_o 9_o to_o l._n 1._o de_fw-fr ritib_n eccles_n c._n 9_o durantius_fw-la who_o show_v how_o foolish_o it_o be_v relect_v by_o heretic_n to_o bellarmine_n 15._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la c._n 15._o and_o brereley_o in_o his_o liturgy_n of_o the_o mass_n d._n mass_n pag._n 40._o n._n 12_o &_o pag._n 94._o light_v d._n concern_v the_o antiquity_n of_o holy-water_n for_o the_o expiation_n of_o small_a offence_n cast_v out_o of_o devil_n and_o other_o great_a miracle_n wrought_v by_o sprinkeling_n thereof_o read_v baronius_n usus_fw-la baronius_n spoud_a indic_n v._o aquae_fw-la beâed_fw-la antiq_fw-la usus_fw-la bellarmine_n 15._o bellarmine_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr eccles_n triumph_n c._n 7._o &_o l._n 2._o de_fw-la missa_fw-la c._n 15._o durantius_fw-la 21._o durantius_fw-la l._n 1._o de_fw-fr rit_fw-fr c._n 21._o and_o brereley_o etc._n brereley_o liturg._n pag._n 64._o light_v u._fw-mi &_o x._o &_o pag._n 94._o l._n b._n etc._n etc._n they_o will_v certify_v you_o that_o both_o these_o ceremony_n be_v apostolical_a tradition_n use_v in_o the_o church_n from_o the_o beginning_n &_o show_v your_o reject_v of_o those_o ancient_a epistle_n because_o they_o be_v mention_v in_o they_o to_o be_v cavil_v without_o ground_n 5._o because_o cook_n find_v in_o some_o of_o those_o epistle_n a_o word_n or_o a_o phrase_n which_o some_o one_o author_n think_v not_o to_o be_v so_o ancient_a in_o that_o sense_n or_o forsooth_o not_o so_o elegant_a and_o ciceronian_a you_o be_v please_v to_o call_v they_o all_o horrid_a and_o barbarous_a 279._o barbarous_a pag._n 279._o &_o to_o help_v out_o the_o matter_n you_o exemplisy_n in_o caius_n which_o be_v none_o of_o the_o fourteen_o allege_v by_o bellarmine_n but_o you_o consider_v not_o that_o diverse_a of_o those_o epistle_n be_v write_v in_o greek_a and_o that_o the_o latin_a phrase_n be_v not_o of_o the_o author_n but_o of_o the_o translator_n and_o as_o nicolas_n the_o first_o 682._o first_o ep._n 8._o apud_fw-la be_v to_o 3._o pag._n 682._o speak_v to_o the_o ungodly_a emperor_n michael_n of_o latin_a translate_v into_o greek_a say_v if_o it_o beget_v barbarisme_n the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o the_o latin_a tongue_n but_o in_o the_o translator_n strive_v not_o only_a to_o keep_v the_o sense_n but_o use_v force_n to_o render_v word_n by_o word_n so_o i_o say_v to_o you_o if_o in_o the_o epistle_n of_o ancient_a pope_n you_o find_v some_o word_n or_o manner_n of_o speech_n not_o so_o usual_a the_o fault_n be_v not_o in_o the_o epistle_n but_o in_o the_o translator_n strive_v to_o render_v they_o word_n by_o word_n and_o to_o go_v no_o further_o for_o the_o confutation_n of_o this_o cavil_n you_o object_n against_o we_o 291._o we_o pag._n 291._o out_o of_o a_o epistle_n of_o adrian_n the_o first_o that_o live_v almost_o 800._o year_n after_o christ_n these_o word_n consecrationes_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la &_o archiepiscoporum_fw-la sicut_fw-la olitana_fw-la constat_fw-la traditio_fw-la nostra_fw-la dioecosis_n existentes_fw-la in_o which_o whether_o you_o regard_v the_o word_n olitana_n or_o the_o phrase_n sicut_fw-la olitana_fw-la constat_fw-la traditio_fw-la &_o consecrationesnostrae_fw-la dioecesis_fw-la existentes_fw-la you_o may_v under_o colour_n that_o the_o phrase_n of_o this_o epistle_n be_v horrid_a and_o barbarous_a reject_v it_o with_o as_o much_o ground_n as_o you_o do_v the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n that_o live_v in_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n the_o truth_n therefore_o be_v that_o you_o reject_v those_o because_o they_o make_v whole_o against_o you_o and_o receive_v this_o because_o you_o find_v something_o in_o it_o which_o may_v serve_v you_o for_o a_o argument_n against_o we_o though_o without_o ground_n for_o adrian_n in_o that_o epistle_n most_o effectual_o prove_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v whereof_o something_o have_v be_v speak_v already_o 2._o already_o chap._n 33._o sect_n 2._o sect_n ii_o the_o nullity_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o pope_n that_o live_v in_o the_o second_o 300._o year_n after_o christ_n there_o be_v no_o strong_a argument_n then_o that_o which_o be_v draw_v from_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o adversary_n for_o as_o tertullian_n observe_v apologet_n observe_v in_o apologet_n no_o man_n lie_v to_o his_o own_o shame_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v soon_o to_o believe_v that_o confess_v against_o himself_o than_o he_o that_o deni_v in_o his_o own_o behalf_n which_o truth_n the_o father_n of_o the_o roman_a eloquence_n understand_v by_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n say_v qui._n say_v orat._n p._n qui._n thy_o testimony_n which_o in_o another_o man_n cause_n be_v little_a to_o be_v regard_v when_o it_o be_v against_o thyself_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o you_o acknowledge_v dedicat._n acknowledge_v answer_v to_o the_o prot._n apol._n epist._n dedicat._n that_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o adversary_n be_v the_o great_a reason_n of_o satisfaction_n let_v we_o then_o see_v whether_o you_o will_v not_o bear_v witness_n for_o we_o against_o yourselves_o that_o the_o pope_n of_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n acknowledge_v and_o exercise_v their_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o this_o chief_o in_o their_o epistle_n for_o of_o most_o of_o they_o there_o be_v no_o other_o writing_n extant_a their_o testimony_n in_o this_o behalf_n be_v plentiful_o allege_v by_o master_n brereley_o 5._o brereley_o protest_v apologâtra_fw-la 1._o sect_n 3._o subdiu_fw-la 10._o &_o sect_n 7._o subd_v 5._o and_o in_o particular_a concern_v the_o pope_n of_o the_o second_o 300._o year_n of_o who_o our_o question_n here_o be_v he_o say_v they_o protestant_n writer_n confess_v and_o say_v that_o in_o the_o five_o age_n the_o roman_a bishop_n apply_v themselves_o to_o get_v and_o establish_v dominion_n over_o other_o church_n to_o this_o end_n they_o usurp_v to_o themselves_o the_o right_n of_o grant_v privilege_n and_o ornament_n to_o other_o archbishop_n they_o confirm_v archbishop_n in_o their_o see_v depose_v excommunicate_v and_o absolve_v other_o arrogate_a also_o to_o themselves_o power_n of_o cite_v archbishop_n to_o declare_v their_o cause_n before_o they_o and_o that_o against_o a_o bishop_n appeal_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v nothing_o shall_v be_v determine_v but_o what_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n censure_v that_o they_o appoint_v legate_n in_o remote_a province_n which_o be_v sometime_o no_o mean_a man_n than_o some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o the_o patriarch_n that_o they_o challenge_v authority_n to_o hear_v and_o determine_v all_o uprise_a controversy_n especial_o in_o question_n of_o faith_n that_o they_o take_v upon_o they_o power_n of_o appoint_v general_a counsel_n and_o to_o be_v precedent_n in_o they_o and_o even_o by_o their_o deputy_n when_o
bishop_n i_o know_v not_o what_o bishop_n be_v not_o subject_a unto_o it_o do_v not_o this_o testimony_n immediate_o follow_v in_o bellarmine_n yes_o and_o it_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o caluin_n 1â_n caluin_n l._n 4._o iust._n c._n 7._o §_o 1â_n on_o the_o rack_n of_o truth_n be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o s_o gregory_n in_o no_o place_n of_o his_o work_n vaunt_v more_o of_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o see_n then_o in_o these_o very_a word_n and_o that_o in_o they_o he_o attribute_v to_o himself_o the_o right_n of_o punish_v bishop_n when_o they_o offend_v be_v it_o not_o then_o imposterous_a to_o conceal_v this_o so_o clear_a a_o evidence_n and_o other_o bring_v in_o by_o bellarmine_n and_o reject_v they_o all_o because_o you_o have_v find_v a_o way_n to_o cavil_n at_o one_o especial_o since_o not_o only_o out_o of_o s._n gregory_n work_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o your_o protestant_a brethren_n it_o be_v a_o truth_n not_o to_o be_v deny_v that_o he_o believe_v himself_o to_o have_v and_o practise_v jurisdiction_n over_o all_o bishop_n whatsoever_o but_o you_o say_v 285._o say_v pag._n 285._o if_o gregory_n in_o some_o term_n seem_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o loud_o as_o though_o he_o be_v very_o great_a yet_o be_v confine_v himself_o to_o the_o constitution_n of_o justinian_n he_o resolve_v according_a to_o the_o constitution_n of_o justinian_n that_o the_o trial_n of_o bishop_n cause_n in_o the_o first_o instance_n belong_v to_o their_o metropolitan_a as_o the_o cause_n of_o the_o metropolitan_a do_v to_o his_o patriarch_n but_o withal_o he_o teach_v 6._o teach_v l._n 2._o ep_n 6._o that_o they_o may_v appeal_v to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o furthermore_o add_v 56._o add_v l._n 11._o ep_n 56._o that_o if_o a_o bishop_n have_v no_o metropolitan_a nor_o patriarch_n over_o he_o than_o say_v he_o his_o cause_n be_v to_o be_v hear_v &_o decide_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a which_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o this_o be_v agreeable_a to_o the_o profession_n which_o justinian_n himself_o make_v in_o the_o law_n inter_fw-la claras_fw-la 8._o claras_fw-la cod._n tit_n â_o l._n 8._o and_o in_o the_o law_n to_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n 7._o constantinople_n cod._n it_o be_v 1._o l._n 7._o in_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o section_n 284._o section_n pag._n 284._o you_o tell_v we_o that_o âân_fw-la of_o those_o pope_n eit_v by_o bellarmine_n call_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o bishop_n thereof_o head_n of_o all_o church_n or_o one_o that_o have_v the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n or_o one_o have_v principality_n they_o do_v so_o and_o withal_o so_o unanswearable_o affirm_v the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o you_o think_v best_a not_o to_o mention_v their_o word_n but_o to_o put_v they_o off_o say_v the_o like_a attribute_n have_v be_v ancient_o ascribe_v to_o other_o church_n and_o bishop_n which_o how_o false_a it_o be_v you_o have_v already_o hear_v 3._o hear_v chap._n 17._o sect_n 2._o chap._n 19_o sect_n 3._o chap._n 35._o chap._n 36_o sect_n 3._o to_o give_v a_o good_a farewell_n you_o conclude_v thus_o 280._o thus_o pag._n 285._o fin_n 280._o there_o be_v diverse_a other_o testimony_n out_o of_o leo_n gelasius_n and_o other_o pope_n who_o breathe_v out_o many_o sentence_n full_a of_o ostentation_n of_o their_o own_o greatness_n hitherto_o you_o have_v hold_v we_o in_o hand_n that_o the_o primitive_a pope_n do_v not_o challenge_v any_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n but_o now_o you_o say_v that_o s._n gregory_n in_o some_o term_n seem_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o loud_o as_o though_o he_o be_v very_o great_a and_o that_o leo_n gelasius_n and_o other_o pope_n breathe_v out_o many_o sentence_n full_a of_o ostentation_n of_o their_o own_o greatness_n but_o whatsoever_o they_o vent_v out_o it_o be_v typhus_fw-la saecularis_fw-la and_o a_o swell_a imposthume_n which_o be_v lance_v that_o it_o bleed_v withal_o by_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n under_o s._n cyprian_n and_o the_o council_n of_o africa_n under_o s._n augustine_n and_o that_o self-love_n bewitch_v many_o pope_n of_o the_o more_o primitive_a time_n they_o boast_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a vicar_n of_o christ_n and_o have_v be_v tax_v for_o their_o great_a arrogancy_n by_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o their_o own_o time_n and_o afterward_o 304._o afterward_o pag._n 303._o fin_n 304._o you_o compare_v s._n leo_n and_o s._n gregory_n to_o adonias_n that_o seek_v traitorous_o to_o pull_v the_o crown_n from_o his_o father_n head_n and_o make_v himself_o king_n to_o which_o he_o have_v right_a this_o forsooth_o be_v the_o reverence_n you_o bear_v to_o the_o primitive_a pope_n who_o antiquity_n have_v have_v in_o so_o great_a veneration_n as_o of_o s._n leo_n and_o s._n gregory_n in_o particular_a you_o have_v hear_v 3._o hear_v chap._n 15._o sect_n 3._o truth_n which_o enforce_v testimony_n from_o her_o enemy_n compel_v you_o to_o confess_v 172.178.182.287_o confess_v pag._n 172.178.182.287_o that_o the_o primitive_a pope_n be_v holy_a pope_n holy_a father_n excellent_o goodly_a &_o learned_a and_o that_o many_o of_o they_o be_v glorious_a martyr_n and_o saint_n who_o memory_n be_v bless_v and_o yet_o the_o same_o truth_n enforce_v you_o here_o to_o confess_v that_o those_o pope_n acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n to_o have_v a_o universal_a authority_n and_o to_o have_v practise_v the_o same_o for_o which_o albeit_o you_o tax_v they_o with_o great_a arrogancy_n yet_o in_o add_v that_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o their_o own_o time_n do_v the_o like_a you_o pass_v the_o limit_n of_o modesty_n and_o truth_n and_o who_o see_v not_o the_o absurd_a manner_n of_o argue_v which_o in_o proof_n hereof_o you_o use_v your_o word_n be_v 13._o be_v pag._n 286._o in_o titulo_fw-la sect_n 13._o our_o general_a discovery_n of_o the_o vanity_n of_o your_o proof_n of_o papal_a monarchy_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o pope_n themselves_o who_o have_v be_v ancient_o note_v of_o pride_n your_o assumpt_n then_o be_v to_o disprove_v the_o papal_a monarchy_n from_o the_o mouth_n of_o pope_n themselves_o but_o you_o produce_v not_o any_o one_o testimony_n nor_o any_o one_o word_n of_o any_o one_o pope_n but_o make_v a_o brief_a repetition_n of_o your_o argument_n which_o in_o their_o several_a place_n have_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v partly_o impertinent_a partly_o false_a and_o partly_o heretical_a impertinent_a as_o of_o tertullian_n false_a as_o of_o the_o african_a council_n s._n cyrill_n s._n basil_n s._n ambrose_n s._n hierome_n s._n augustine_n heretical_a as_o of_o polycrates_n resist_v victor_n and_o of_o the_o arian_n who_o to_o conceal_v that_o they_o be_v heretic_n you_o call_v the_o orientall_n and_o final_o part_n of_o they_o of_o such_o as_o for_o a_o time_n defend_v the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o rebaptisation_n as_o s._n cyprian_n and_o his_o council_n of_o carthage_n which_o though_o s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v tot_fw-la answer_v l._n 6._o the_o baptism_n per_fw-la tot_fw-la and_o confute_v word_n by_o word_n you_o take_v no_o notice_n thereof_o but_o urge_v it_o as_o currant_n and_o of_o authority_n against_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n yet_o that_o all_o may_v not_o seem_v to_o be_v repetition_n you_o bring_v forth_o one_o new_a argument_n 286._o argument_n pag._n 286._o as_o draw_v from_o the_o mouth_n of_o pope_n themselves_o which_o be_v that_o one_o flaccidius_n rely_v on_o the_o greatness_n of_o the_o city_n of_o rome_n equal_v the_o deacon_n of_o rome_n with_o priest_n this_o you_o object_n as_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n himself_o point_v at_o the_o vain_a boast_n of_o rome_n whereas_o it_o be_v not_o s._n augustine_n but_o of_o the_o author_n quaestionum_fw-la novi_fw-la &_o veteris_fw-la testamenti_fw-la who_o heretofore_o 52._o heretofore_o pag._n 52._o when_o he_o be_v not_o for_o your_o purpose_n you_o reject_v as_o a_o heretical_a author_n but_o now_o his_o word_n be_v of_o s._n augustine_n himself_o and_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o the_o very_a mouth_n of_o ancient_a and_o holy_a pope_n necessity_n enforce_v you_o to_o such_o absurdity_n for_o better_a argument_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o such_o a_o cause_n the_o blindness_n of_o your_o zeal_n permit_v you_o not_o to_o see_v the_o inconsequence_n &_o contrariety_n of_o your_o doctrine_n while_o you_o profess_v 287._o profess_v pag._n 287._o that_o the_o primitive_a pope_n be_v holy_a man_n and_o yet_o that_o they_o be_v proud_a arrogant_a and_o challenge_v dominion_n above_o other_o beyond_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o jurisdiction_n yes_o say_v you_o ibid._n you_o ibid._n why_o not_o they_o be_v holy_a disciple_n of_o christ_n who_o ambitious_o wish_v that_o they_o may_v sit_v the_o one_o on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o christ_n and_o on_o the_o other_o on_o
the_o left_a in_o his_o kingdom_n they_o be_v holy_a apostle_n that_o seek_v among_o themselves_o without_o any_o ordinance_n of_o their_o lord_n who_o shall_v be_v chief_a they_o be_v indeed_o disciple_n and_o apostle_n of_o christ_n but_o as_o yet_o imperfect_a nor_o do_v they_o arrogate_v to_o themselves_o &_o much_o less_o seek_v to_o practice_v superiority_n over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n as_o the_o pope_n from_o the_o beginning_n have_v do_v which_o if_o it_o be_v not_o give_v they_o by_o christ_n can_v not_o stand_v with_o christian_a modesty_n &_o much_o less_o with_o sanctity_n for_o such_o a_o claim_n be_v not_o a_o small_a blemish_n nor_o a_o venial_a offence_n but_o the_o very_a height_n of_o luciferian_a pride_n for_o so_o you_o call_v it_o 336._o it_o pag._n 336._o and_o the_o very_a mark_n of_o antichrist_n himself_o again_o the_o ambition_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v reform_v and_o they_o perfect_v and_o confirm_v in_o grace_n by_o the_o come_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n but_o there_o be_v no_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n that_o any_o one_o of_o the_o primitive_a pope_n who_o you_o tax_v with_o pride_n and_o great_a arrogancy_n do_v at_o any_o time_n before_o their_o death_n relinquish_v that_o claim_n yea_o contrary_o all_o of_o they_o constant_o mantain_v their_o authority_n as_o give_v they_o by_o christ_n in_o s._n peter_n and_o exercise_v the_o same_o over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n until_o their_o die_a day_n and_o if_o this_o be_v in_o they_o great_a arrogancy_n and_o luciferian_a pride_n they_o be_v far_o from_o be_v holy_a saint_n of_o god_n which_o yet_o you_o true_o confess_v they_o to_o have_v be_v condemn_v thereby_o your_o doctrine_n against_o their_o supremacy_n of_o falsehood_n and_o yourself_o of_o slander_v god_n saint_n with_o luciferian_a pride_n and_o arrogancy_n your_o last_o refuge_n 286._o refuge_n pag._n 286._o that_o pope_n be_v not_o fit_a witness_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n be_v refute_v above_o 3._o above_o chap._n 15._o sect_n 3._o chap._n xxxviii_o the_o universal_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n prove_v by_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o authority_n over_o other_o bishop_n as_o among_o the_o argument_n for_o the_o pope_n universal_a jurisdiction_n there_o be_v none_o more_o convince_a then_o that_o from_o the_o first_o age_n after_o christ_n by_o their_o authority_n they_o have_v ordain_v depose_v and_o restore_v bishop_n throughout_o the_o whole_a church_n so_o there_o be_v none_o which_o with_o more_o sleight_n you_o seek_v to_o clude_v that_o the_o pope_n ancient_o exercise_v this_o authority_n be_v a_o thing_n so_o certain_a that_o danaeus_n a_o learned_a protestant_n be_v enforce_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o truth_n thereof_o 117._o thereof_o resp_n ad_fw-la bellar._n part_n 1._o pag._n 117._o and_o answer_n it_o follow_v not_o that_o because_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n use_v that_o right_n he_o have_v therefore_o that_o right_n for_o certain_o he_o have_v no_o right_a to_o do_v this_o but_o only_a tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n which_o to_o be_v a_o unconscionable_a answer_n no_o man_n can_v doubt_v for_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o now_o he_o do_v so_o much_o more_o do_v he_o then_o want_v temporal_a power_n to_o compel_v bishop_n especial_o in_o country_n far_o remote_a from_o rome_n to_o obey_v he_o which_o yet_o he_o must_v have_v have_v if_o that_o use_n of_o his_o power_n have_v not_o be_v from_o a_o true_a right_n give_v he_o by_o christ_n but_o only_o by_o tyranny_n and_o usurpation_n wherefore_o you_o find_v this_o answer_n of_o danaeus_n not_o to_o satisfy_v have_v make_v a_o bold_a adventure_n to_o deny_v that_o the_o ancient_a pope_n exercise_v any_o such_o power_n which_o how_o untrue_a it_o be_v the_o ensue_a section_n shall_v demonstrate_v sect_n i._o the_o pope_n universal_a authority_n prove_v by_o the_o institution_n and_o confirmation_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o the_o use_n and_o signification_n of_o the_o pall_n or_o mantle_n grant_v to_o archbishop_n your_o first_o position_n be_v 288._o be_v pag._n 288._o ancient_o institution_n of_o metropolitan_o and_o patriarch_n be_v do_v by_o communicatory_a letter_n to_o the_o chief_a patriarch_n which_o be_v letter_n of_o correspondence_n to_o show_v their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n in_o which_o case_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n send_v his_o pall_n in_o token_n of_o his_o consent_n that_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v ever_o accustom_v to_o institute_v bishop_n in_o the_o most_o remote_a province_n of_o the_o world_n appear_v out_o of_o the_o book_n entitle_v vitæ_fw-la romanorum_fw-la pontificum_fw-la write_v by_o damasus_n or_o as_o other_o more_o probable_o think_v by_o anastasius_n bibliothecarius_n in_o which_o be_v report_v the_o ordination_n of_o bishop_n make_v by_o linus_n immediate_a successor_n to_o s._n peter_n and_o successive_o by_o all_o other_o bishop_n of_o that_o see_n the_o letter_n you_o mention_v of_o metropolitan_o &_o patriarch_n write_v at_o the_o time_n of_o their_o institution_n to_o the_o chief_a patriarch_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v not_o only_o of_o correspondence_n to_o show_v their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n for_o howbeit_o they_o do_v contain_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o thereby_o they_o may_v be_v receive_v into_o her_o communion_n and_o have_v the_o title_n of_o catholic_a bishop_n yet_o moreover_o they_o contain_v a_o oath_n of_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o by_o the_o same_o letter_n they_o ask_v his_o pal_z which_o s._n gregory_n witness_n 1._o witness_n l._n 7._o ep_n 5._o indict_v 1._o be_v grant_v to_o none_o until_o they_o do_v humble_o and_o earnest_o desire_v it_o it_o be_v true_a that_o the_o pope_n by_o send_v his_o pal_z to_o archbishop_n do_v express_v his_o consent_n to_o their_o institution_n but_o if_o they_o do_v not_o owe_v subjection_n to_o he_o there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o require_v his_o consent_n and_o much_o less_o of_o ask_v his_o pal_z for_o the_o pal_z do_v not_o only_o contain_v a_o expression_n of_o the_o pope_n consent_n to_o their_o institution_n but_o a_o grant_n of_o great_a authority_n and_o power_n which_o by_o the_o pal_z be_v signify_v and_o give_v unto_o they_o so_o testify_v the_o irrefragable_a doctor_n alexander_n of_o hales_n 400._o year_n since_o when_o the_o pal_z be_v give_v say_v he_o 6._o he_o part._n 4._o q._n 10._o memb_v 5._o art_n 2._o §._o 6._o there_o be_v give_v fullness_n of_o pastoral_n power_n for_o before_o a_o metropolitan_a be_v honour_v with_o the_o pal_z he_o be_v not_o to_o ordain_v priest_n consecrate_v bishop_n or_o dedicate_v church_n and_o before_o he_o the_o four_o council_n of_o lateran_n consist_v of_o 1280._o father_n declare_v 5._o declare_v c._n 5._o that_o after_o the_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n have_v take_v their_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o have_v receive_v the_o pal_z from_o he_o as_o a_o token_n of_o the_o plenitude_n of_o pontifical_a office_n they_o may_v grant_v it_o also_o to_o their_o suffragans_fw-la receive_v in_o like_a manner_n from_o they_o a_o oath_n of_o obedience_n both_o to_o themselves_o and_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o before_o the_o council_n of_o lateran_n innocentius_n the_o three_o 63._o three_o myster_n missae_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 63._o the_o pal_z contain_v the_o fullness_n of_o pontifical_a office_n for_o as_o much_o as_o in_o it_o and_o with_o it_o the_o fullness_n of_o pontifical_a office_n be_v confer_v for_o before_o a_o metropolitan_a be_v honour_v with_o the_o pal_z he_o ought_v not_o to_o ordain_v priest_n consecrate_v bishop_n or_o dedicate_v church_n nor_o have_v the_o name_n of_o archbishop_n which_o also_o be_v testify_v before_o he_o by_o honorius_n the_o second_o tyri_fw-la second_o ep._n add_v suffragan_a &_o episcop_n tyri_fw-la and_o by_o s._n bernard_n 19_o bernard_n vitæ_fw-la s._n malach._n cap._n 19_o report_v of_o s._n malachias_n that_o have_v found_v a_o metropolitan_a see_v in_o ireland_n and_o know_v it_o to_o want_v authority_n until_o it_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a he_o travel_v to_o rome_n in_o person_n to_o procure_v the_o pal_z as_o well_o for_o that_o see_v as_o also_o for_o another_o which_o celsus_n have_v found_v and_o before_o he_o wilfrid_n a_o english_a abbot_n who_o for_o his_o great_a labour_n in_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o the_o german_n and_o convert_n that_o nation_n to_o christ_n have_v deserve_v to_o be_v entitle_v the_o apostle_n of_o germany_n come_v to_o rome_n and_o bring_v consecrate_v bishop_n by_o gregory_n the_o three_o and_o in_o his_o consecration_n call_v boniface_n after_o he_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a as_o all_o bishop_n use_v to_o do_v junij_fw-la do_v spond_n a_o 723._o n._n
after_o the_o authority_n whereby_o athanasius_n be_v restore_v it_o be_v by_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n as_o the_o same_o historian_n record_v these_o be_v your_o word_n than_o which_o none_o can_v be_v more_o untrue_a for_o that_o julius_n in_o his_o letter_n do_v not_o only_o give_v his_o advice_n declare_v that_o he_o think_v athanasius_n worthy_a to_o be_v restore_v but_o operative_o exercise_v his_o power_n &_o authority_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o they_o effectual_o and_o absolute_o restore_v athanasius_n and_o those_o other_o bishop_n be_v a_o truth_n not_o only_o acknowledge_v by_o your_o protestant_a writer_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v 2._o hear_v chap._n 37._o sect_n 2._o but_o in_o itself_o so_o certain_a that_o i_o think_v no_o man_n but_o doctor_n morton_n can_v have_v the_o face_n to_o deny_v it_o julius_n b._n of_o rome_n say_v socrates_n 11._o socrates_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o by_o reason_n of_o the_o privilege_n of_o his_o church_n above_o other_o defend_v their_o cause_n and_o send_v they_o back_o with_o letter_n write_v to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n whereby_o each_o of_o they_o may_v be_v restore_v to_o their_o place_n and_o reprehend_v severe_o those_o that_o have_v rash_o depose_v they_o and_o they_o go_v from_o rome_n and_o rely_v upon_o the_o letter_n of_o julius_n recover_v their_o seat_n again_o which_o be_v also_o express_v in_o the_o title_n of_o that_o chapter_n the_o b._n of_o rome_n say_v sozomen_n 7._o sozomen_n l_o 3_o c._n 7._o have_v examine_v their_o complaint_n and_o find_v that_o they_o agree_v touch_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a receive_v they_o into_o his_o communion_n and_o because_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o see_n the_o charge_n of_o all_o belong_v to_o he_o he_o restore_v to_o each_o of_o they_o his_o church_n and_o in_o the_o title_n of_o that_o chapter_n athanasius_n &_o paul_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o julius_n receive_v their_o seat_n again_o be_v not_o these_o word_n clear_a enough_o but_o yet_o moreover_o do_v not_o nicephorus_n say_v 8._o say_v l._n 9_o c._n 8._o that_o julius_n by_o the_o greatness_n of_o his_o see_n and_o out_o of_o the_o ancient_a privilege_n &_o prerogative_n thereof_o know_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o all_o bishop_n whersoever_o belong_v to_o he_o as_o to_o a_o judge_n arm_v each_o of_o they_o with_o powerful_a letter_n and_o send_v they_o back_o into_o the_o east_n restore_v their_o church_n unto_o they_o and_o do_v not_o he_o and_o sozomen_n add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n that_o he_o rebuke_v the_o arian_n for_o that_o they_o have_v rash_o depose_v those_o bishop_n and_o trouble_v the_o church_n not_o stand_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a and_o command_v that_o some_o of_o they_o in_o the_o name_n of_o all_o shall_v on_o a_o set_a day_n appear_v at_o rome_n to_o give_v account_n of_o the_o justice_n of_o their_o sentence_n and_o threaten_v not_o to_o let_v they_o pass_v without_o punishment_n unless_o they_o do_v cease_v to_o innovate_v and_o do_v not_o felix_n pope_n egypt_n pope_n ep._n ad_fw-la athanas_n &_o cet_fw-fr episc_n egypt_n who_o live_v soon_o after_o that_o time_n deliver_v the_o same_o in_o most_o clear_a and_o effectual_a word_n and_o final_o do_v not_o he_o theodoret_n 4._o theodoret_n l._n 2._o hist_o c._n 4._o sozomen_n 7._o sozomen_n l._n 3._o c._n 7._o and_o s._n athanasius_n himself_o 2._o himself_o apolog._n 2._o out_o of_o the_o undoubted_a epistle_n of_o julius_n report_n that_o julius_n follow_v the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n command_v the_o arian_n bishop_n to_o come_v to_o rome_n and_o summon_v the_o divine_a athanasius_n canonical_o to_o present_v himself_o in_o judgement_n and_o that_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o receive_v this_o citation_n he_o transport_v himself_o in_o diligence_n to_o rome_n but_o the_o author_n of_o the_o tragedy_n go_v not_o because_o they_o know_v their_o lie_n will_v be_v open_o discover_v how_o think_v you_o now_o do_v not_o julius_n with_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n restore_v those_o orthodox_n bishop_n to_o their_o church_n and_o that_o by_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o see_n and_o because_o the_o charge_n of_o all_o bishop_n belong_v unto_o he_o do_v he_o not_o command_v and_o canonical_o cite_v both_o athanasius_n and_o his_o adversary_n to_o appear_v in_o judgement_n at_o rome_n and_o appoint_v they_o a_o day_n for_o it_o and_o find_v athanasius_n to_o be_v free_a from_o the_o crime_n which_o his_o enemy_n have_v malicious_o forge_v against_o he_o do_v he_o not_o threaten_v to_o punish_v they_o unless_o they_o desist_v to_o innovate_v and_o trouble_v the_o church_n be_v this_o nothing_o but_o to_o declare_v that_o he_o think_v those_o orthodox_n bishop_n worthy_a to_o be_v restore_v be_v it_o not_o to_o exercise_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o this_o show_v the_o falsehood_n of_o your_o addition_n fin_n addition_n pag._n 306._o fin_n that_o the_o authority_n whereby_o athanasius_n be_v restore_v be_v the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n for_o he_o be_v a_o arian_n be_v so_o far_o from_o command_v he_o or_o any_o of_o those_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o be_v restore_v that_o as_o socrates_n write_v 12._o write_v l._n 2._o c._n 12._o when_o he_o hear_v that_o paul_n b._n of_o constantinople_n be_v restore_v by_o the_o letter_n of_o julius_n he_o storm_v thereat_o and_o cause_v the_o perfect_a of_o the_o city_n by_o his_o secular_a power_n to_o thrust_v he_o out_o again_o as_o he_o in_o his_o own_o person_n once_o before_o have_v do_v 8._o do_v see_v spon_n anno_o 342._o n._n 7._o &_o 8._o and_o the_o arian_n crew_n support_v by_o he_o so_o molest_v athanasius_n that_o they_o enforce_v he_o to_o fly_v again_o to_o rome_n and_o constantius_n himself_o persevere_v in_o persecute_v he_o as_o long_o as_o he_o dare_v which_o be_v witness_n sozamen_n 19_o sozamen_n l._n 3._o c._n 19_o and_o theodoret_n 12._o theodoret_n l._n 2._o c._n 11._o &_o 12._o until_o athanasius_n and_o julius_n make_v complaint_n thereof_o to_o his_o brother_n constans_n a_o catholic_a emperor_n who_o assist_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n of_o julius_n with_o his_o imperial_a power_n write_v threthe_v letter_n to_o constantius_n and_o so_o effectual_a that_o he_o dare_v resist_v no_o long_o but_o permit_v athanasius_n according_a to_o the_o just_a sentence_n give_v by_o julius_n to_o return_v to_o his_o church_n and_o assi_v he_o therein_o and_o how_o far_o constantius_n be_v from_o have_v any_o power_n to_o restore_v bishop_n or_o to_o forbid_v they_o from_o return_v to_o their_o seat_n appear_v in_o this_o that_o when_o he_o command_v the_o bishop_n assemble_v at_o ariminum_n 29._o ariminum_n socrat._v l._n 2._o c._n 29._o not_o to_o dissolve_v their_o council_n but_o to_o expect_v his_o answer_n they_o send_v a_o peremptory_a message_n unto_o he_o and_o neglect_v his_o command_n as_o of_o one_o that_o have_v no_o authority_n to_o meddle_v in_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n present_o dissolve_v their_o council_n and_o return_v to_o their_o church_n let_v the_o reader_n now_o judge_v how_o many_o untruth_n you_o have_v tell_v in_o this_o one_o history_n and_o whether_o you_o may_v not_o be_v think_v guilty_a of_o impiety_n in_o defend_v and_o canonise_a the_o outrageous_a proceed_n of_o blasphemous_a heretic_n and_o iultify_v the_o sacrilegious_a violence_n offer_v to_o catholic_a bishop_n for_o not_o subscribe_v to_o their_o heresy_n and_o final_o in_o answer_v 285._o answer_v pag._n 285._o that_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a pope_n in_o proof_n of_o their_o authority_n may_v be_v confute_v and_o indeed_o confound_v by_o as_o ancient_a opposition_n as_o of_o the_o oriental_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n julius_n such_o example_n we_o allow_v you_o to_o maintain_v your_o doctrine_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o bishop_n &_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o i_o presume_v that_o every_o understanding_n protestant_n will_v disclaim_v from_o such_o a_o advocate_n and_o think_v that_o by_o such_o precedent_n his_o cause_n be_v not_o defend_v but_o disgrace_v condemn_a and_o parallal_v with_o arianisme_n sect_n vii_o other_o passage_n of_o doctor_n morton_n examine_v bellarmine_n in_o proof_n 18._o proof_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 18._o of_o the_o pope_n authority_n allege_v that_o sixtus_n the_o three_o depose_v polychronius_n you_o say_v l._n say_v pag._n 195._o margin_n light_v l._n he_o number_v he_o as_o one_o of_o the_o eight_o patriarch_n which_o nicolas_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n reckon_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o michael_n the_o emperor_n this_o be_v another_o untruth_n the_o eight_o patriarch_n which_o bellarmine_n mention_v out_o of_o the_o epistle_n of_o nicolas_n be_v of_o constantinople_n namely_o maximus_n nestorius_n acacius_n anthymus_n sergius_n pyrrhus_n paulus_n petrus_n all_o these_o be_v depose_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o
out_o that_o of_o flavianus_n be_v not_o because_o that_o be_v the_o chief_a bellarmine_n insi_v on_o but_o because_o in_o that_o you_o find_v something_o to_o quarrel_v at_o which_o you_o find_v not_o in_o the_o rest_n but_o upon_o examination_n the_o evidence_n of_o this_o very_a example_n single_v out_o by_o yourself_o will_v show_v how_o unanswearable_a the_o rest_n be_v the_o ease_n be_v this_o the_o church_n of_o antioch_n be_v in_o schism_n two_o bishop_n paulinus_n and_o meletius_n pretend_v right_a to_o that_o patriarchall_a seat_n and_o some_o adhere_n to_o the_o one_o some_o to_o the_o other_o not_o without_o danger_n of_o a_o great_a tumult_n they_o come_v to_o agreement_n 3._o agreement_n socrat._v l._n 5._o c._n 5._o sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 3._o that_o all_o such_o ecclesiastic_n as_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o govern_v that_o church_n or_o be_v in_o expectation_n thereof_o which_o be_v six_o in_o number_n shall_v bind_v themselves_o by_o a_o solemn_a oath_n not_o to_o admit_v of_o that_o bishopric_n so_o long_o as_o either_o paulinus_n or_o meletius_n live_v and_o after_o the_o death_n of_o either_o of_o they_o to_o let_v the_o superuiver_n peaceable_o enjoy_v that_o seat_n alone_o meletius_n be_v dead_a the_o antiochian_o contrary_a to_o their_o oath_n advance_v flavianus_n to_o the_o bishopric_n in_o opposition_n to_o paulinus_n and_o he_o contrary_a to_o his_o oath_n admit_v thereof_o at_o which_o damasus_n pope_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n be_v great_o offend_v 11._o offend_v sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o &_o not_o without_o cause_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o new_a schism_n it_o cause_v not_o only_o in_o that_o church_n and_o in_o a_o great_a part_n of_o the_o east_n but_o also_o because_o it_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o agreement_n make_v by_o oath_n and_o a_o great_a wrong_n to_o paulinus_n who_o be_v very_o old_a and_o a_o personage_n of_o so_o great_a veneration_n for_o his_o sanctity_n and_o merit_n that_o valens_n a_o heretical_a emperor_n drive_v many_o catholic_a bishop_n from_o their_o church_n in_o to_o banishment_n never_o offer_v to_o touch_v he_o 2._o he_o s._n hieron_n bp._n 61._o add_v pamach_n socrat._v l._n 4._o c._n 2._o wherefore_o damasus_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n write_v communicatory_a letter_n to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o true_a bishop_n of_o antioch_n but_o abstayn_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o flavianus_n and_o excommunicate_v diodorus_n and_o acacius_n that_o have_v ordain_v he_o 11._o he_o sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 11._o and_o whereas_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n under_o nectarius_n have_v confirm_v flavianus_n they_o the_o western_a bishop_n annul_v that_o confirmation_n and_o by_o their_o letter_n accompany_v with_o other_o of_o the_o emperor_n gratian_n use_v also_o therein_o the_o help_n of_o theodosius_n who_o write_v to_o the_o same_o effect_n they_o command_v the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n to_o come_v to_o rome_n 9_o rome_n s._n hiero._n ep._n 27._o ad_fw-la eustoch_n theod._n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 8._o fin_n etc._n etc._n 9_o &_o put_v the_o election_n of_o flavianus_n again_o in_o trial_n at_o a_o general_a council_n assemble_v there_o give_v withal_o to_o both_o party_n assignation_n to_o appear_v flavianus_n distrust_v the_o equity_n of_o his_o cause_n appear_v not_o 23._o not_o theod._n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 23._o but_o have_v recourse_n to_o excuse_n and_o to_o the_o emperor_n but_o paulinus_n obey_v transport_v himself_o to_o rome_n in_o company_n of_o other_o bishop_n and_o renown_a personage_n of_o the_o east_n whereof_o s._n hierome_n speak_v say_v princip_n say_v ep._n 16._o ad_fw-la princip_n the_o ecclesiastical_a necessity_n draw_v i_o to_o rome_n with_o the_o holy_a bishop_n paulinus_n and_o epiphanius_n whereof_o the_o one_o govern_v the_o church_n of_o antioch_n in_o syria_n and_o the_o other_o the_o church_n of_o salamina_n in_o cyprus_n and_o again_o eustoch_n again_o ep_v 17._o add_v eustoch_n when_o the_o imperial_a letter_n have_v draw_v to_o rome_n the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n paula_n see_v there_o the_o admirable_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o christ_n paulinus_n b._n of_o antioch_n and_o epiphanius_n b._n of_o salamina_n in_o cyprus_n whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o albeit_o the_o election_n of_o flavianus_n have_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n paulinus_n be_v still_o hold_v to_o be_v the_o true_a b._n of_o antioch_n and_o flavianus_n his_o competitor_n in_o reputation_n of_o a_o intruder_n for_o want_v of_o confirmation_n from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o therefore_o as_o he_o appear_v not_o so_o neither_o do_v the_o bishop_n of_o the_o constantinopolitan_a council_n which_o have_v confirm_v he_o but_o by_o letter_n write_v to_o to_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n of_o rome_n excuse_v themselves_o you_o say_v they_o 9_o they_o theod._n l._n 5._o hist_o c._n 9_o move_v with_o brotherly_a charity_n call_v we_o as_o your_o member_n by_o the_o letter_n of_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n etc._n etc._n but_o beside_o that_o our_o church_n be_v new_o restore_v if_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v this_o have_v be_v whole_o abandon_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n which_o many_o of_o ut_fw-la can_v no_o way_n put_v in_o execution_n for_o as_o much_o as_o we_o travail_v to_o constantinople_n upon_o the_o letter_n of_o your_o reverence_n send_v the_o last_o year_n after_o the_o council_n of_o aquileia_n to_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n theodosius_n have_v prepare_v ourselves_o for_o none_o but_o that_o journey_n of_o constantinople_n only_o and_o have_v get_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o bishop_n remain_v in_o the_o province_n for_o none_o but_o that_o and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n they_o make_v intercession_n for_o flavianus_n fear_v lest_o the_o cause_n of_o paulinus_n will_v be_v favour_v by_o damasus_n by_o reason_n he_o have_v be_v ordain_v patriarch_n of_o antioch_n by_o lucifer_n a_o sardinian_a bishop_n and_o legate_n to_o liberius_n predecessor_n to_o damasus_n the_o business_n stand_v thus_o paulinus_n die_v but_o the_o schism_n live_v still_o for_o his_o disciple_n create_v to_o themselves_o euagrius_n a_o new_a bishop_n in_o opposition_n to_o flavianus_n 15._o flavianus_n socrat._v l._n 5._o c._n 15._o sozom._n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o whereby_o not_o only_a that_o church_n but_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v shake_v 78._o shake_v amb._n ep._n 78._o and_o bring_v into_o danger_n of_o schism_n for_o remedy_n whereof_o siricius_n pope_n call_v a_o council_n at_o capua_n to_o which_o though_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n and_o west_n resort_v in_o great_a number_n yet_o flavianus_n still_o appear_v not_o flavianus_n say_v s._n ambrose_n ibid._n ambrose_n ibid._n have_v cause_n to_o fear_v and_o therefore_o he_o fly_v a_o trial_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n one_o only_a flavianus_n not_o subject_a to_o law_n as_o it_o seem_v to_o he_o appear_v not_o when_o we_o be_v all_o assemble_v the_o council_n to_o prevent_v further_a danger_n of_o schism_n ordain_v that_o while_o the_o cause_n be_v in_o agitation_n communion_n shall_v not_o be_v deny_v to_o the_o catholic_n that_o adhere_v to_o either_o party_n and_o to_o make_v a_o end_n of_o that_o long_a strife_n commit_v the_o examination_n and_o decision_n of_o the_o whole_a cause_n to_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n both_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a authority_n of_o his_o see_v in_o the_o east_n as_o also_o because_o his_o pariarkship_n border_v upon_o that_o of_o antioch_n where_o the_o party_n be_v present_a and_o final_o because_o he_o be_v a_o man_n impartial_a the_o sacred_a synod_n say_v s._n ambrose_n ibid._n ambrose_n ibid._n write_v to_o theophilus_n have_v commit_v the_o right_a of_o examine_v this_o cause_n to_o your_o unanimity_n and_o to_o our_o other_o colleague_n of_o egypt_n it_o be_v necessary_a that_o you_o summon_v again_o our_o brother_n flavianus_n and_o moreover_o he_o advertise_v theophilus_n that_o he_o ought_v to_o carry_v the_o business_n so_o as_o that_o the_o final_a decision_n thereof_o may_v be_v reserve_v to_o the_o b_o of_o rome_n and_o confirm_v by_o he_o we_o conceive_v say_v he_o ibid._n he_o ibid._n that_o you_o ought_v to_o refer_v the_o cause_n to_o our_o holy_a brother_n b_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o we_o presume_v you_o will_v judge_v so_o as_o can_v displease_v he_o and_o all_o use_n after_o when_o have_v receive_v the_o tenor_n of_o your_o act_n we_o shall_v see_v you_o have_v judge_v thing_n so_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v undoubted_o allow_v thereof_o we_o will_v receive_v with_o joy_n the_o fruit_n of_o your_o examination_n by_o this_o it_o appear_v that_o s_n ambrose_n hold_v the_o b_o of_o rome_n to_o be_v the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o bishop_n and_o that_o to_o he_o appertain_v the_o final_a decision_n of_o their_o cause_n and_o the_o same_o
appear_v yet_o further_o in_o this_o that_o s._n john_n chrysostome_n who_o be_v then_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n and_o favour_v flanianus_fw-la as_o have_v a_o little_a before_o be_v a_o priest_n of_o he_o beseech_v theophilus_n 3._o theophilus_n l._n 8._o c._n 3._o to_o labour_v with_o he_o and_o help_v he_o to_o make_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n propitious_a to_o flavianus_n and_o to_o this_o end_n by_o mutual_a consent_n of_o both_o be_v choose_v as_o legate_n to_o be_v send_v to_o rome_n acacius_n b_o of_o beroea_n &_o isidore_n priest_n and_o the_o same_o be_v confirm_v by_o sociate_n 25._o sociate_n l._n 5._o c._n 25._o theophilus_n say_v he_o send_v the_o priest_n isidore_n appease_v damasus_n that_o be_v offend_v and_o represent_v to_o he_o that_o it_o be_v profitable_a for_o the_o concord_n of_o the_o church_n to_o parson_n the_o fault_n of_o plavianus_n and_o so_o the_o communion_n be_v rester_v to_o he_o final_o notwithstanding_o that_o the_o emperor_n favour_v flavianus_n and_o take_v upon_o he_o to_o plead_v his_o cause_n in_o judgement_n at_o rome_n yet_o he_o never_o be_v receive_v as_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n nor_o his_o legate_n admit_v until_o the_o pope_n at_o the_o intreary_a of_o so_o great_a personage_n have_v pardon_v his_o fault_n and_o confirm_v he_o in_o that_o see_n this_o be_v the_o true_a history_n of_o flavianus_n which_o you_o have_v single_v out_o as_o a_o especial_a example_n of_o retorsion_n against_o bellarmine_n to_o prove_v the_o pope_n no-iuridicall_a authority_n over_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n but_o you_o perform_v it_o not_o for_o this_o example_n evident_o show_v the_o pope_n authority_n exercise_v over_o the_o eastern_a church_n many_o way_n as_o 1._o in_o annul_v the_o confirmation_n of_o flavianus_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n 2._o in_o call_v those_o bishop_n to_o rome_n to_o put_v the_o cause_n in_o trial_n again_o nor_o do_v they_o in_o their_o answer_n except_v against_o his_o authority_n to_o call_v they_o but_o humble_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v their_o head_n and_o themselves_o to_o be_v his_o member_n excuse_v their_o not_o come_v for_o want_v of_o time_n and_o other_o reason_n express_v in_o their_o epistle_n 3._o in_o call_v not_o only_o the_o western_a but_o also_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n to_o the_o council_n of_o capua_n they_o obey_v his_o command_n 4._o by_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n ambrose_n wish_v theophilus_n to_o procure_v a_o confirmation_n of_o his_o sentence_n from_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n 5._o by_o the_o intercession_n of_o theophilus_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n and_o of_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n himself_o make_v to_o the_o pope_n to_o pardon_n flavianus_n his_o fault_n and_o to_o confirm_v he_o in_o the_o bishopric_n of_o antioch_n and_o 6._o by_o the_o legate_n which_o flavianus_n himself_o in_o the_o end_n be_v fain_o to_o send_v to_o the_o pope_n before_o he_o can_v be_v receive_v as_o true_a bishop_n of_o that_o see_v which_o he_o need_v not_o to_o have_v do_v if_o his_o confirmation_n have_v not_o depend_v on_o the_o pope_n approbation_n all_o this_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o socrates_n and_o sozomen_n who_o bellarmine_n cit_v and_o also_o out_o of_o s._n ambrose_n impartial_a relator_n of_o this_o cause_n you_o mention_v not_o any_o of_o they_o but_o fasten_v upon_o the_o relation_n of_o theodoret_n who_o be_v a_o suffragan_n of_o the_o patriarkship_n of_o antioch_n and_o a_o creature_n to_o one_o of_o flavianus_n his_o successor_n be_v a_o great_a favores_fw-la of_o his_o person_n and_o have_v report_v his_o cause_n with_o more_o relation_n to_o favour_n then_o to_o truth_n for_o first_o 23._o first_o l._n 5_o c._n 23._o he_o make_v flavianus_n absolute_a and_o lawful_a successor_n to_o meletius_n and_o paulinus_n a_o injust_a pretender_n to_o that_o see_v whereas_o contrariwise_o paulinus_n be_v the_o true_a successor_n and_o flavianus_n a_o inâââder_n as_o be_v bind_v by_o oath_n not_o to_o permit_v himself_o nor_o any_o other_o to_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n in_o place_n of_o meletius_n but_o to_o let_v paulinus_n enjoy_v that_o dignity_n alone_o and_o peaceable_o while_o he_o live_v 2._o he_o mention_v not_o this_o oath_n of_o flavianus_n but_o signify_v that_o he_o come_v to_o the_o bishopric_n by_o a_o lawful_a and_o canonical_a election_n without_o breach_n of_o any_o oath_n 3._o to_o make_v good_a the_o cause_n of_o flavianus_n against_o euagrius_n he_o report_v that_o paulinus_n alone_o before_o his_o death_n ordain_v euagrius_n contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n when_o as_o socrates_n 15._o socrates_n l._n 5._o c._n 15._o and_o sozomen_n 15._o sozomen_n l._n 7._o c._n 15._o impartial_a writer_n testify_v that_o euagrius_n be_v not_o ordain_v by_o paulinus_n but_o by_o his_o disciple_n after_o his_o yeath_n 4._o nor_o be_v he_o to_o be_v credit_v in_o his_o report_n that_o theodosius_n have_v hear_v flavianus_n at_o constantinople_n do_v not_o press_v he_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n but_o bid_v he_o return_v home_o to_o antioch_n and_o that_o come_n himself_o afterward_o to_o rome_n he_o undertake_v to_o answer_n for_o flavianus_n and_o to_o plead_v his_o cause_n in_o judgement_n and_o yet_o notwithstanding_o even_o this_o relation_n of_o theodoret_n partial_a as_o it_o be_v prove_v the_o iuridicall_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o patriarch_n or_o antioch_n if_o it_o be_v take_v entire_o as_o it_o be_v set_v down_o by_o he_o and_o not_o mangle_v as_o you_o report_v it_o for_o he_o say_v 23._o say_v l._n 5._o c._n 23._o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o that_o admirable_a man_n damasus_n but_o also_o after_o he_o siricius_n and_o anastasius_n successor_n to_o siricius_n inveigh_v great_o against_o the_o emperor_n tell_v he_o here_o press_v they_o that_o practise_a tyranny_n against_o himself_o but_o leave_v unpunished_a those_o that_o by_o tyranny_n seek_v to_o overthrow_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n whereupon_o as_o the_o emperor_n before_o have_v command_v he_o so_o now_o again_o he_o labour_v to_o compel_v he_o to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o have_v his_o cause_n judge_v there_o this_o show_v that_o the_o emperor_n acknowledge_v no_o less_o obligation_n in_o the_o great_a patriarch_n to_o obey_v the_o pope_n then_o in_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o empire_n to_o obey_v the_o emperor_n and_o that_o such_o bishop_n as_o show_v themselves_o disobedient_a to_o he_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n and_o deserve_v no_o less_o punishment_n than_o subject_n that_o rebel_n against_o their_o prince_n again_o the_o emperor_n say_v theodoret_n ibid._n theodoret_n ibid._n come_v long_o after_o that_o time_n to_o rome_n and_o be_v blame_v again_o by_o the_o bishop_n for_o not_o repress_v the_o tyranny_n of_o flavianus_n say_v he_o will_v take_v upon_o himself_o the_o person_n of_o flavianus_n and_o plead_v his_o cause_n in_o judgement_n which_o last_o clause_n you_o in_o your_o relation_n of_o theodoret_n word_n omit_v because_o it_o show_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o flavianus_n his_o cause_n belong_v to_o the_o court_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o plead_n of_o cause_n in_o judgement_n be_v only_o before_o they_o that_o have_v authority_n to_o judge_v final_o though_o theodoret_n relate_v partial_o this_o story_n of_o flavianus_n yet_o that_o he_o intend_v not_o thereby_o to_o deny_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n appear_v not_o only_o by_o what_o have_v be_v here_o prove_v to_o the_o contrary_a but_o also_o because_o in_o express_a word_n he_o profess_v kenat_n profess_v in_o ep._n ad_fw-la kenat_n that_o the_o roman_a see_v have_v the_o stern_a of_o government_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o suffragan_n of_o the_o patriarkeship_n of_o antioch_n when_o he_o be_v depose_v from_o his_o bishopric_n by_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v not_o recourse_n to_o his_o own_o patriarch_n for_o redress_v but_o appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n and_o by_o he_o be_v restore_v he_o likewise_o know_v that_o john_n patriarch_n of_o the_o same_o see_v have_v be_v depose_v by_o celestine_n pope_n 2._o pope_n see_v above_o chap._n 18._o sect_n 2._o and_o maximus_n confirm_v in_o that_o see_v by_o leo_n the_o great_a 3._o great_a see_v this_o chap._n sect_n 3._o all_o this_o show_v how_o untrue_o you_o say_v fin_n say_v pag._n 296._o fin_n that_o damasus_n depose_v not_o flavianus_n nor_o execute_v any_o act_n of_o iuridic_a all_o proceed_n against_o he_o but_o that_o he_o be_v confirm_v in_o his_o bishopric_n by_o the_o emperor_n for_o damasus_n annul_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n that_o have_v confirm_v he_o and_o cite_v both_o the_o father_n of_o that_o council_n and_o he_o to_o appear_v at_o rome_n to_o have_v his_o cause_n try_v there_o and_o thereupon_o the_o emperor_n once_o and_o twice_o urge_v he_o
be_v wrong_v by_o the_o false_a council_n of_o ephesus_n have_v present_v a_o libel_n of_o appeal_n to_o his_o legate_n he_o will_v command_v a_o general_a council_n to_o be_v hold_v within_o italy_n for_o the_o nicen_n canon_n require_v this_o necessary_o to_o be_v do_v after_o the_o put_n in_o of_o a_o appeal_v to_o these_o i_o add_v theodoret_n testify_v in_o express_a word_n that_o he_o appeal_v to_o leo_n pope_n these_o witness_n show_v that_o the_o phrase_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o pope_n from_o remote_a nation_n be_v not_o very_o uncouth_a but_o very_o familiar_a in_o the_o day_n of_o theodoret_n and_o in_o former_a age_n and_o that_o the_o right_n of_o appeal_n to_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v acknowledge_v and_o testify_v by_o holy_a pope_n of_o the_o primitive_a time_n by_o general_a counsel_n by_o emperor_n by_o bishop_n and_o by_o all_o ancient_a writer_n and_o the_o same_o may_v be_v prove_v by_o other_o example_n if_o these_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o show_v your_o ignorance_n in_o deny_v if_o not_o rather_o your_o boldness_n in_o outface_v so_o know_v a_o truth_n sect_n v._o that_o s._n athanasius_n appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o theodoret_n to_o leo_n as_o absolute_a judge_n and_o that_o by_o their_o authority_n both_o of_o they_o be_v restore_v to_o their_o church_n that_o s._n athanasius_n appeal_v to_o julius_n pope_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o seat_n have_v be_v effectual_o prove_v 6._o prove_v chap._n 38._o sect_n 6._o and_o to_o what_o there_o be_v say_v i_o add_v here_o the_o testimony_n of_o liberatus_n who_o speak_v of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n depose_v by_o the_o emperor_n zeno_n say_v 18._o say_v in_o brevia_fw-la c._n 18._o he_o appeal_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o also_o bless_a athanasius_n do_v and_o that_o theodoret_n appeal_v to_o leo_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n that_o have_v power_n to_o command_v he_o and_o sentence_v his_o cause_n he_o himself_o witness_v as_o you_o have_v hear_v init_fw-la hear_v sect._n praece_v init_fw-la nevertheless_o you_o take_v upon_o you_o to_o know_v what_o pass_v in_o theodoret_n cause_n better_a than_o theodoret_n himself_o say_v 304._o say_v pag._n 304._o he_o address_v his_o request_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n not_o as_o to_o a_o peremptory_a judge_n but_o as_o to_o a_o patron_n and_o arbitrary_a dais-man_n &_o one_o upon_o who_o authority_n he_o depend_v acknowledge_v in_o express_a word_n his_o reason_n to_o wit_n the_o integrity_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o promise_v to_o abide_v his_o award_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o other_o and_o before_o you_o have_v say_v m._n say_v pag._n 255._o mark_fw-mi lit_fw-fr m._n the_o event_n show_v that_o there_o be_v in_o this_o business_n no_o iuridicall_a proceed_n at_o all_o only_a theodoret_n upon_o his_o confession_n of_o his_o orthodox_n faith_n be_v receive_v into_o communion_n with_o leo_n as_o leo_n may_v have_v be_v with_o john_n of_o constantinople_n in_o like_a case_n these_o be_v your_o word_n to_o prove_v that_o theodoret_n appeal_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n that_o have_v authority_n to_o annul_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o council_n that_o depose_v he_o and_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o see_n but_o only_o as_o to_o a_o arbitrator_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o integrity_n of_o his_o faith_n when_o as_o he_o contrary_o in_o express_a word_n beseech_v renatus_n renat_n renatus_n ep_v ad_fw-la renat_n to_o persuade_v the_o most_o holy_a and_o most_o bless_a archbishop_n of_o rome_n to_o use_v his_o apostolical_a authority_n and_o command_v he_o to_o appear_v before_o his_o council_n that_o be_v his_o consistory_n because_o that_o holy_a see_v have_v the_o guidance_n and_o government_n of_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n and_o write_v to_o pope_n leo_n he_o say_v leon._n say_v in_o ep._n ad_fw-la leon._n i_o attend_v the_o sentence_n of_o your_o apostolic_a throne_n and_o beseech_v your_o holiness_n to_o succour_v i_o appeal_n to_o your_o right_n and_o just_a judgement_n and_o to_o command_v that_o i_o be_v bring_v before_o you_o etc._n etc._n and_o i_o promise_v to_o stand_v to_o your_o judgement_n content_v myself_o with_o that_o which_o you_o shall_v determine_v what_o ever_o it_o be_v and_o i_o beseech_v you_o that_o i_o may_v be_v judge_v according_a to_o my_o writing_n if_o theodoret_n have_v study_v to_o express_v the_o pope_n judicial_a authority_n to_o sentence_v his_o cause_n can_v he_o have_v do_v it_o in_o more_o clear_a and_o effectual_a word_n then_o these_o it_o be_v true_a that_o as_o he_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v privilege_v above_o other_o for_o many_o cause_n so_o especial_o for_o that_o she_o have_v remain_v free_a from_o all_o blemish_n of_o heresy_n none_o have_v ever_o possess_v that_o see_v which_o have_v hold_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o truth_n or_o which_o have_v not_o keep_v the_o apostolical_a grace_n entire_a and_o without_o blemish_n the_o reason_n why_o he_o mention_v the_o purity_n of_o faith_n always_o preserve_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v because_o he_o have_v be_v accuse_v and_o depose_v as_o guilty_a of_o heresy_n in_o his_o writing_n and_o therefore_o he_o appeal_v confident_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o one_o who_o judgement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v be_v infallible_a and_o to_o who_o the_o decision_n of_o all_o such_o controversy_n belong_v acknowledge_v withal_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n and_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v his_o absolute_a superior_n and_o judge_n with_o authority_n to_o command_v he_o and_o sentence_v his_o cause_n and_o leo_n pope_n according_o use_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n declare_v he_o free_a from_o heresy_n and_o restore_v he_o to_o his_o see_n whereupon_o the_o senator_n that_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n say_v with_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n 1._o council_n act._n 1._o let_v the_o most_o reverend_a bishop_n theodoret_n come_v in_o because_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n leo_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o see_n who_o then_o see_v not_o the_o insufficiency_n of_o your_o answer_n that_o theodoret_n appeal_v not_o to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n but_o make_v his_o request_n unto_o he_o as_o to_o a_o arbitrary_a dais-man_n for_o appeal_n be_v not_o make_v to_o arbitrator_n but_o to_o absolute_a judge_n a_o arbitator_n be_v he_o to_o who_o the_o determination_n of_o a_o controversy_n be_v remit_v by_o agreement_n of_o both_o party_n which_o in_o theodoret_n cause_n can_v have_v no_o place_n for_o his_o adversary_n never_o agree_v to_o have_v his_o cause_n remit_v to_o the_o pope_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o be_v a_o absolute_a judge_n theodoret_n appeal_n to_o he_o have_v be_v in_o vain_a nor_o can_v he_o have_v recover_v his_o seat_n by_o the_o pope_n sentence_n for_o a_o sentence_n pronounce_v without_o authority_n be_v of_o no_o effect_n and_o though_o after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v admit_v theodoret_n upon_o the_o pope_n restitution_n to_o take_v his_o place_n among_o the_o bishop_n some_o of_o they_o doubt_v of_o his_o faith_n because_o he_o have_v write_v against_o cyrill_n of_o alexandria_n in_o favour_n of_o nestorius_n and_o therefore_o fear_v the_o pope_n may_v have_v restore_v he_o upon_o misinformation_n urge_v he_o to_o anathematise_v nestorius_n again_o yet_o that_o no_o way_n help_v your_o cause_n nor_o derogate_v from_o the_o pope_n authority_n for_o when_o theodoret_n have_v anathematise_v nestorius_n the_o council_n proceed_v not_o to_o a_o new_a sentence_n of_o restitution_n but_o subscribe_v to_o that_o of_o leo_n cry_v out_o all_o with_o one_o voice_n 2._o voice_n act._n 2._o long_o live_v archbishop_n leo_n leo_n have_v judge_v the_o judgement_n of_o god_n sect_n vi_o that_o s._n chrysostome_n appeal_v to_o innocentius_n pope_n as_o to_o a_o absolute_a judge_n and_o by_o his_o authority_n be_v restore_v to_o his_o church_n of_o constantinople_n s._n chrysostome_n be_v depose_v from_o his_o patriarchall_a see_n at_o the_o procurement_n of_o eudoxia_n the_o empress_n wife_n to_o arcadius_n emperor_n of_o the_o east_n by_o a_o council_n of_o bishop_n under_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n have_v recourse_n by_o letter_n of_o appeal_n to_o innocentius_n pope_n this_o you_o deny_v say_v n._n say_v pag._n 307._o n._n that_o whereas_o bellarmine_n and_o baronius_n refer_v you_o to_o the_o story_n itself_o you_o can_v find_v nothing_o less_o in_o it_o than_o the_o matter_n of_o appeal_v for_o say_v you_o chrysostome_n make_v his_o request_n not_o to_o the_o pope_n alone_o but_o to_o the_o other_o reverend_a bishop_n within_o the_o roman_a province_n together_o with_o he_o but_o this_o be_v a_o mistake_n proceed_v
address_v to_o that_o city_n which_o be_v then_o head_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n still_o until_o this_o day_n have_v the_o sovereignty_n of_o all_o church_n and_o in_o his_o commentary_n of_o the_o eight_o verse_n of_o the_o first_o chapter_n here_o again_o say_v he_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n ought_v to_o be_v place_v first_o because_o the_o roman_n among_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v the_o chief_a &_o because_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v the_o sovereignty_n among_o all_o church_n sect_n vii_o why_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o entitle_v his_o epistle_n catholic_a epistle_n that_o s._n paul_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n have_v give_v sufficient_a testimony_n of_o the_o preeminency_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n above_o all_o other_o be_v a_o thing_n manifest_a if_o not_o you_o but_o the_o ancient_a father_n may_v be_v the_o judge_n they_o you_o must_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o follow_v and_o forsake_v you_o fight_v against_o s._n paul_n and_o they_o against_o this_o truth_n you_o frame_v yet_o two_o argument_n more_o the_o first_o be_v ââ_o be_v pag._n ââ_o that_o whereas_o the_o epistle_n of_o s._n james_n peter_n jude_n and_o john_n be_v entitle_v catholic_a epistler_n if_o s._n paul_n have_v be_v possess_v with_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o now_o bishop_n of_o rome_n he_o will_v have_v entitle_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o catholic_a church_n and_o at_o least_o inscribe_v his_o epistle_n catholic_a the_o second_o be_v ibid._n be_v ibid._n that_o he_o give_v not_o to_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o much_o as_o the_o title_n of_o a_o church_n which_o yet_o in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o corinthian_n galathiâns_n and_o thessalonian_o he_o give_v to_o those_o church_n to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o do_v not_o give_v to_o any_o of_o their_o epistle_n the_o name_n of_o catholic_a epistle_n that_o title_n be_v prefix_v to_o the_o epistle_n of_o james_n peter_n john_n &_o jude_n by_o the_o church_n for_o diverse_a reason_n which_o you_o may_v read_v in_o salmeron_n jacobi_fw-la salmeron_n disp_n 1._o in_o ep._n s._n jacobi_fw-la and_o chief_o because_o as_o s._n augustine_n 14._o augustine_n de_fw-fr fide_fw-la &_o oper_n c._n 14._o witness_v they_o be_v write_v against_o the_o heresy_n of_o simon_n magus_n defend_v justification_n by_o only_a faith_n wherein_o protestant_n be_v his_o heir_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n their_o epistle_n insist_v so_o much_o on_o good_a work_n and_o the_o keep_n of_o god_n commandment_n and_o show_v that_o faith_n without_o charity_n be_v dead_a and_o fruitless_a and_o for_o the_o same_o cause_n s._n john_n 27._o john_n ep._n 1._o vers_fw-la 24._o &_o 27._o admonish_v the_o faithful_a to_o abide_v in_o that_o doctrine_n which_o they_o have_v hear_v from_o the_o beginning_n because_o many_o seducer_n be_v go_v out_o into_o the_o world_n and_o s._n jude_n seqq_n jude_n verse_n 4.8_o &_o seqq_n exhort_v they_o to_o stand_v to_o their_o old_a faith_n show_v they_o by_o example_n that_o it_o be_v damnable_a not_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o it_o to_o your_o second_o argument_n i_o may_v answer_v with_o 8._o chrysostome_n that_o they_o which_o be_v but_o a_o small_a number_n new_o convert_v and_o weak_a s._n paul_n salute_v they_o by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n to_o comfort_v they_o but_o not_o those_o that_o be_v more_o in_o number_n and_o of_o long_o stand_v as_o the_o roman_n be_v when_o he_o write_v unto_o they_o for_o this_o reason_n i_o say_v that_o as_o s._n paul_n do_v not_o salute_v the_o ephesian_n philippian_n &_o colossian_n by_o the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n in_o express_a word_n so_o neither_o do_v he_o the_o roman_n but_o only_o virtual_o and_o implicit_o say_v 1.7_o say_v rom._n 1.7_o to_o all_o that_o be_v at_o rome_n the_o belove_a of_o god_n call_v saint_n which_o title_n can_v agree_v to_o any_o congregation_n but_o to_o a_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o rom._n as_o tom._n 13._o disp_n 7._o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la rom._n salmeron_n learned_o prove_v and_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o acknowledge_v say_v sin_n say_v pag._n 7â_n sin_n s._n paul_n to_o show_v that_o the_o church_n rather_o do_v consist_v in_o the_o professor_n then_o in_o the_o place_n omit_v the_o name_n of_o a_o church_n and_o mention_v only_o the_o person_n say_v to_o the_o saint_n at_o colosse_n to_o they_o at_o rome_n belove_v of_o god_n call_v saint_n but_o because_o you_o mention_v salmerons_n solution_n i_o will_v give_v the_o reader_n notice_n how_o foul_o you_o abuse_v and_o fallify_v he_o he_o give_v three_o solution_n to_o this_o argument_n the_o first_o he_o most_o approve_v and_o this_o you_o whole_o pretermit_v to_o persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o he_o give_v not_o three_o but_o only_o the_o two_o late_a and_o therefore_o whereas_o he_o begin_v the_o second_o thus_o posset_n secundò_fw-la commode_v dici_fw-la you_o leave_v out_o fecundo_fw-la that_o this_o may_v seem_v not_o to_o be_v his_o second_o solution_n but_o his_o first_o and_o to_o the_o same_o end_n you_o say_v allata_fw-la alia_fw-la solutione_n ad_fw-la hunc_fw-la redit_fw-la that_o have_v bring_v another_o solution_n he_o return_v to_o this_o say_v but_o the_o first_o solution_n in_o my_o judgement_n be_v more_o soâde_n which_o word_n contain_v a_o most_o notorious_a falsification_n for_o he_o return_v not_o to_o this_o which_o you_o make_v the_o first_o by_o leave_v out_o secundò_fw-la but_o to_o the_o first_o of_o the_o three_o which_o you_o never_o mention_v and_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o the_o first_o solution_n be_v in_o his_o judgement_n the_o more_o solid_a you_o by_o falsify_v apply_v this_o his_o say_n to_o the_o second_o against_o which_o because_o you_o can_v make_v a_o shift_n to_o cavil_n you_o will_v have_v your_o reader_n think_v it_o be_v salmerons_n first_o solution_n and_o that_o he_o think_v it_o to_o be_v the_o most_o solid_a of_o all_o the_o three_o but_o of_o what_o import_n to_o your_o cause_n be_v this_o juggle_n marry_o that_o because_o in_o the_o second_o solution_n salmeron_n mention_v the_o faction_n that_o be_v then_o in_o rome_n between_o the_o jew_n and_o gentile_n you_o may_v infer_v that_o s._n paul_n do_v think_v rome_n to_o be_v as_o other_o church_n subject_a to_o the_o alteration_n of_o schism_n and_o faction_n and_o in_o proof_n thereof_o you_o say_v 69._o say_v pag._n 69._o that_o not_o only_o our_o professor_n among_o themselves_o but_o also_o pope_n and_o antipope_n be_v distract_v into_o diverse_a schism_n and_o faction_n etc._n etc._n one_o of_o our_o devout_a doctor_n reckon_v the_o number_n of_o these_o schism_n to_o have_v be_v twenty_o a_o other_o account_v the_o continuance_n of_o one_o of_o they_o to_o have_v endure_v fifty_o year_n our_o devout_a doctor_n who_o you_o mention_v to_o prove_v that_o there_o have_v be_v twenty_o schism_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v stapleton_n the_o place_n in_o which_o you_o cite_v he_o be_v his_o thirteen_o book_n de_fw-fr princip_n doctrine_n cap._n 15._o whereas_o in_o that_o work_n he_o have_v but_o twelve_o book_n in_o all_o but_o be_v it_o that_o there_o have_v ben_fw-mi twenty_o schism_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n schism_n be_v not_o a_o sin_n against_o faith_n but_o against_o charity_n if_o then_o antipope_n or_o other_o professor_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v break_v the_o bond_n of_o charity_n be_v it_o therefore_o lawful_a for_o you_o to_o renounce_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n if_o schism_n be_v a_o lawful_a cause_n of_o departure_n who_o can_v stay_v in_o your_o protestant_a congregation_n divide_v &_o subdivide_v into_o lutheran_n caluinist_n zwinglian_n brownist_n and_o a_o thousand_o other_o sect_n under_o these_o new_a one_o daily_o arise_v among_o you_o as_o separatist_n and_o socinian_n all_o which_o be_v divide_v not_o only_o in_o point_n of_o charity_n but_o in_o the_o very_a substance_n of_o faith_n and_o sure_o you_o be_v ill_o advise_v to_o object_v the_o schism_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o justification_n of_o your_o departure_n from_o she_o for_o since_o as_o our_o author_n have_v advertise_v nether_a the_o persecution_n of_o heathen_a emperor_n nor_o the_o goth_n and_o vandal_n nor_o the_o turk_n nor_o any_o sack_n or_o massacre_n by_o alaricus_n gensericus_fw-la attila_n borbon_n and_o other_o nor_o the_o emulation_n of_o secular_a prince_n be_v they_o king_n or_o emperor_n nor_o the_o many_o schism_n and_o division_n between_o the_o lawful_a pope_n and_o antipope_n nor_o the_o manifold_a difficulty_n &_o danger_n in_o their_o election_n nor_o the_o great_a vice_n which_o have_v be_v note_v in_o some_o of_o their_o person_n nor_o any_o scandal_n have_v have_v power_n to_o overthrow_v the_o roman_a church_n as_o they_o have_v do_v the_o church_n
charge_n that_o hereafter_o they_o be_v not_o slothful_a but_o by_o their_o carriage_n show_v themselves_o to_o have_v the_o zeal_n and_o solicitude_n which_o become_v priest_n and_o that_o they_o be_v vigilant_a in_o these_o thing_n which_o it_o be_v fit_v for_o they_o to_o do_v just_o according_a to_o god_n that_o hereafter_o no_o complaint_n may_v be_v make_v of_o they_o and_o if_o you_o find_v any_o of_o they_o to_o be_v negligent_a send_v he_o to_o we_o without_o excuse_n that_o he_o may_v feel_v by_o canonical_a punishment_n how_o grievous_a a_o offence_n it_o be_v not_o to_o amend_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v reprehensible_a and_o in_o the_o privilege_n which_o he_o grant_v to_o the_o monastery_n of_o s._n medardus_n 38._o medardus_n l._n 12._o epistolarum_n sin_n &_o alias_o l._n 2._o post_v ep_n 38._o if_o any_o king_n bishop_n judge_n or_o secular_a person_n whatsoever_o shall_v violate_v the_o decree_n of_o this_o apostolical_a and_o our_o command_n let_v he_o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o honour_n be_v he_o of_o never_o so_o high_a a_o degree_n i_o know_v that_o bellarmine_n allege_v this_o decree_n you_o tell_v we_o out_o of_o doctor_n james_n 179._o james_n pag._n 179._o a_o man_n of_o as_o much_o credit_n as_o yourself_o that_o it_o be_v forge_v whereas_o that_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a pope_n gregory_n the_o seven_o which_o live_v 600._o year_n near_a the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n than_o doctor_n james_n and_o have_v better_a mean_n to_o know_v what_o writing_n of_o his_o be_v legitimate_a and_o what_o spurious_a allege_v it_o as_o his_o undoubted_a epistle_n and_o his_o testimony_n you_o disprove_v no_o otherwise_o then_o by_o rail_v against_o he_o who_o yet_o as_o hereafter_o i_o shall_v show_v 3._o show_v chap._n 32._o sect_n 3._o the_o historian_n of_o that_o age_n and_o among_o they_o the_o two_o s._n anselmes_n of_o canterbury_n and_o luca_n high_o extol_v for_o one_o of_o the_o most_o admirable_a prelate_n that_o ever_o sit_v in_o the_o chair_n of_o s._n peter_n and_o who_o sanctity_n god_n himself_o testify_v with_o many_o most_o famous_a miracle_n but_o howsoever_o you_o carp_n at_o this_o decree_n of_o s._n gregory_n bellarmine_n in_o the_o same_o place_n 40._o place_n cont._n barâââ_n c._n 40._o allege_v another_o of_o the_o same_o tenor_n grant_v by_o he_o to_o a_o hospital_n build_v in_o austum_n by_o brunichildes_n queen_n &_o syagrius_n bishop_n of_o that_o city_n which_o because_o you_o know_v not_o how_o to_o shift_v of_o you_o sly_o pass_v over_o without_o mention_v it_o notwithstanding_o s._n gregory_n authority_n and_o command_n be_v no_o less_o effectual_o express_v in_o it_o then_o in_o the_o former_a i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o as_o this_o holy_a doctor_n confess_v â6_n confess_v l._n 4._o ep_n â6_n he_o have_v learn_v from_o the_o apostle_n to_o carry_v humility_n in_o his_o hart_n and_o yet_o to_o preserve_v the_o honour_n and_o dignity_n of_o his_o place_n command_v and_o denounce_v punishment_n to_o offender_n when_o it_o be_v needful_a sect_n ii_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n have_v show_v that_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n depose_v nestorius_n by_o the_o commandment_n of_o pope_n celestine_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o best_a and_o holy_a pope_n to_o command_n when_o the_o affair_n require_v it_o let_v we_o go_v on_o with_o you_o 115._o you_o pag._n 115._o to_o the_o cause_n of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n who_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n dare_v not_o judge_v but_o reserve_v he_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o celestine_n papam_fw-la celestine_n conc._n ephes_n to_o 4._o c._n 17._o in_o ep_n ad_fw-la celestin_n papam_fw-la this_o again_o say_v we_o show_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n you_o deny_v it_o because_o those_o father_n in_o the_o same_o epistle_n report_n that_o they_o have_v divest_v he_o of_o all_o sacerdotal_a power_n and_o depose_v he_o before_o they_o make_v any_o relation_n thereof_o to_o celestine_n pope_n false_a for_o their_o word_n be_v ep_n be_v in_o eadem_fw-la ep_n move_v with_o the_o indignity_n of_o his_o proceed_n we_o will_v have_v pronounce_v against_o he_o such_o a_o sentence_n as_o he_o have_v pronounce_v against_o those_o that_o be_v not_o convict_v of_o any_o crime_n but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o may_v with_o lenity_n overcome_v his_o rashness_n we_o have_v reserve_v his_o sentence_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o you_o piety_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n we_o have_v excommunicate_v he_o &_o divest_v he_o of_o all_o sacerdotal_a power_n these_o word_n evident_o convince_v against_o you_o that_o those_o father_n to_o gain_n john_n with_o lenity_n and_o hope_v that_o he_o may_v be_v reclaim_v as_o afterward_o in_o the_o time_n of_o sixtus_n pope_n he_o be_v pronounce_v not_o any_o absolute_a and_o final_a sentence_n against_o he_o according_a to_o his_o desert_n but_o reserve_v that_o to_o celestine_n as_o to_o his_o supreme_a judge_n yet_o they_o excommunicate_v he_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n and_o as_o they_o say_v to_o the_o emperor_n 8._o emperor_n ep._n ad_fw-la theodos_fw-la to_o 4._o c._n 8._o tantisper_fw-la for_o a_o while_n suspend_v he_o from_o the_o exercise_n of_o his_o episcopal_a function_n that_o he_o may_v not_o hurt_v other_o and_o the_o same_o be_v gather_v out_o of_o celestine_n epistle_n to_o the_o council_n 628._o council_n apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 628._o in_o which_o he_o say_v that_o after_o their_o sentence_n against_o john_n diverse_a thing_n remain_v to_o be_v consider_v and_o determine_v by_o he_o and_o this_o proceed_n of_o the_o ephesine_n council_n against_o john_n be_v afterward_o imitate_v by_o the_o six_o council_n general_a in_o the_o cause_n of_o macarius_n another_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n as_o the_o emperor_n constantine_n pogonate_a report_n in_o these_o word_n 18._o word_n in_o 6._o synod_n act._n 18._o macarius_n b._n of_o antioch_n and_o his_o adhereur_n have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n and_o reserve_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o most_o holy_a pope_n it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a that_o both_o these_o counsel_n acknowledge_v the_o give_v of_o the_o last_o and_o definitive_a sentence_n against_o those_o patriarch_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n which_o be_v also_o confirm_v by_o the_o word_n of_o iwenall_n b._n of_o jerusalem_n utter_v in_o presence_n of_o the_o whole_a council_n of_o ephesus_n 794._o ephesus_n to._n 4._o c._n 4._o apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 1._o pag._n 794._o it_o be_v fit_a say_v he_o that_o john_n the_o right_a reverend_a b._n of_o antioch_n honour_v this_o great_a holy_a and_o ecumenical_a council_n have_v recourse_n hither_o to_o justify_v himself_o of_o what_o be_v object_v against_o he_o and_o that_o he_o honour_n and_o obey_v the_o apostolic_a throne_n of_o great_a rome_n especial_o since_o the_o custom_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n and_o practice_n be_v that_o the_o seat_n of_o amioch_n be_v perpetual_o rule_v and_o judge_v by_o that_o of_o rome_n i_o appeal_v to_o the_o reader_n whether_o these_o counsel_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n in_o reserve_v to_o he_o the_o last_o sentence_n in_o the_o cause_n of_o these_o two_o great_a patriarch_n what_o then_o may_v we_o think_v of_o you_o that_o have_v the_o boldness_n to_o outface_v so_o manifest_a a_o truth_n sect_n iii_o of_o the_o ordination_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o cyprus_n treat_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n but_o there_o remain_v one_o which_o you_o 116._o you_o pag._n 116._o call_v a_o principal_a objection_n and_o it_o be_v that_o whereas_o reginus_n zenon_n and_o euagrius_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n have_v by_o a_o petition_n present_v to_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n make_v complaint_n of_o the_o patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 4._o antioch_n to._n 2._o append._n 1._o c._n 4._o that_o contrary_a to_o the_o ancient_a custom_n practise_v from_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o canon_n of_o nice_a he_o have_v presume_v to_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o that_o island_n the_o council_n decree_v ibid._n decree_v ibid._n that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v encroath_n upon_o the_o liberty_n of_o any_o other_o nor_o draw_v under_o his_o subjection_n any_o province_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o he_o from_o the_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o that_o if_o the_o ancient_a custom_n be_v not_o for_o the_o bishop_n of_o antioch_n to_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o cyprus_n he_o shall_v not_o trouble_v the_o bishop_n of_o that_o island_n but_o leave_v to_o they_o the_o ordination_n of_o their_o own_o bishop_n this_o decree_n you_o will_v have_v to_o exclude_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n as_o well_o as_o of_o any_o other_o but_o your_o
to_o place_v his_o see_v at_o rome_n rather_o than_o in_o any_o other_o city_n be_v the_o dignity_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o end_n say_v s._n leo_n paul_n leo_n serm._n 1._o de_fw-fr apost_n pet._n &_o paul_n that_o the_o light_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v reveal_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o all_o nation_n may_v from_o the_o head_n of_o the_o world_n be_v communicate_v more_o effectual_o to_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o this_o cause_n the_o â_z of_o chalcedon_n speak_v when_o they_o say_v 15._o say_v act._n 15._o rome_n get_v the_o primacy_n because_o it_o be_v the_o chief_a seat_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o both_o these_o cause_n be_v comprehend_v by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n and_o valentinian_n in_o their_o law_n make_v a_o little_a before_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o these_o word_n 24._o word_n novel_a theodos_fw-la do_fw-mi 24._o three_o thing_n have_v establish_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a the_o merit_n of_o s._n peter_n who_o be_v prince_n of_o the_o episcopal_a society_n the_o dignity_n of_o the_o city_n and_o the_o synodical_a authority_n 3._o you_o object_n 118._o object_n pag._n 118._o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n give_v privilege_n to_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n equal_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o we_o deny_v for_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n make_v of_o equal_a privilege_n this_o clause_n be_v afterward_o add_v by_o anatolius_n or_o by_o the_o clerk_n of_o constantinople_n 4._o constantinople_n see_v this_o prove_v above_o in_o this_o chap._n sect_n 4._o and_o to_o this_o s._n gregory_n seem_v to_o relate_v when_o he_o say_v 14._o say_v l._n 5._o ep_n 14._o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o one_o place_n have_v be_v falsify_v by_o the_o grecian_n and_o the_o fathe_n of_o chalcedon_n never_o intend_v by_o this_o canon_n to_o give_v the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n any_o privilege_n of_o exemption_n from_o their_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n but_o only_o to_o grant_v they_o precedency_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n as_o have_v be_v prove_v 4._o prove_v in_o this_o chap._n sect_n 4._o and_o the_o same_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o writing_n of_o leo_n pope_n who_o though_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o which_o he_o write_v to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a to_o pulcheria_n the_o empress_n to_o anatolius_n himself_o and_o to_o diverse_a other_o bishop_n of_o this_o subject_n he_o speak_v against_o anatolius_n for_o his_o ambitious_a attempt_n yet_o in_o none_o of_o they_o do_v he_o say_v or_o insinuate_v that_o those_o father_n give_v to_o anatolius_n or_o that_o anatolius_n himself_o ever_o aspire_v to_o equality_n of_o privilege_n with_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n but_o only_o reprehend_v he_o for_o wrong_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n and_o antioch_n in_o procure_v himself_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o they_o the_o same_o be_v yet_o further_o prove_v because_o when_o rome_n be_v fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o goth_n and_o wandal_n the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n make_v use_n of_o the_o time_n and_o set_v this_o canon_n on_o foot_n again_o procure_v the_o emperor_n zeno_n to_o establish_v by_o a_o law_n that_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o precedency_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n and_o the_o like_a they_o obtain_v from_o justinian_n after_o the_o recovery_n of_o rome_n when_o he_o ordain_v 131._o ordain_v novel_a 131._o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o holy_a see_v apostolic_a and_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o the_o other_o see_n last_o the_o same_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o subjection_n which_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n acknowledge_v to_o the_o pope_n after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n which_o he_o exercise_v over_o they_o for_o not_o long_o after_o that_o time_n when_o acacius_n b._n of_o constantinople_n a_o enemy_n to_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v fall_v into_o the_o faction_n of_o heretic_n the_o church_n of_o the_o patriarkeship_n of_o constantinople_n have_v recourse_n to_o symmachus_n pope_n as_o to_o their_o pastor_n &_o as_o superior_a to_o their_o patriarch_n see_v your_o child_n perish_v say_v they_o bafil_v they_o ep._n eccles_n orient_n ad_fw-la symach_n in_o volume_n orthodox_n impress_n bafil_v in_o the_o prevarication_n of_o our_o father_n acacius_n delay_v not_o or_o rather_o to_o speak_v with_o the_o prophet_n stumber_v not_o but_o make_v haste_n to_o deliver_v us._n and_o when_o the_o same_o acacius_n for_o his_o adhere_n to_o peter_n moggus_n a_o heretical_a invasor_n of_o the_o see_v of_o alexandria_n be_v depose_v by_o felix_n pope_n though_o he_o stand_v out_o as_o long_o as_o he_o live_v contemn_v the_o pope_n sentence_n send_v unto_o he_o to_o constantinople_n yet_o the_o emperor_n justine_n that_o succeed_v anastasius_n cause_v felix_n his_o sentence_n to_o be_v execute_v on_o he_o after_o his_o death_n make_v his_o name_n to_o be_v raze_v out_o of_o the_o record_n of_o the_o church_n and_o from_o the_o recital_n in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n we_o have_v give_v order_n say_v justine_n to_o hormisdas_n pope_n hormisd_v pope_n epist._n add_v hormisd_v that_o the_o reverend_a church_n of_o constantinople_n and_o many_o other_o accomplish_v your_o desire_n in_o raze_v out_o the_o name_n of_o those_o who_o you_o have_v command_v to_o be_v take_v away_o from_o the_o sacred_a record_n and_o in_o conformity_n to_o this_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o the_o same_o hormisdas_n say_v hormisd_v say_v epist_n ad_fw-la hormisd_v i_o anathematise_v acacius_n sometime_o bishop_n of_o this_o city_n and_o promise_v hereafter_o not_o to_o recite_v in_o the_o sacred_a mystery_n the_o name_n of_o they_o that_o be_v exclude_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o agree_v not_o in_o all_o thing_n with_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o theodorus_n anagnostes_n report_v stopha_n report_v ad_fw-la calc_n hist._n eccles_n theodor._n ex_fw-la edit_fw-la robert_n stopha_n that_o when_o anastasius_n the_o emperor_n urge_v macedonius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n to_o abrogate_v the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n he_o answer_v he_o can_v not_o do_v it_o without_o a_o general_a council_n in_o which_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n must_v be_v precedent_n and_o when_o anthymus_n b._n of_o trebizond_n invade_v the_o see_v of_o constantinople_n agapetus_n pope_n be_v arrive_v thither_o depose_v he_o even_o in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n itself_o and_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o justinian_n the_o emperor_n and_o excommunicate_v the_o empress_n theodora_n that_o protect_v he_o and_o with_o his_o own_o hand_n ordain_v menas_z in_o his_o place_n the_o truth_n of_o all_o which_o be_v aver_v by_o justinian_n himself_o 42_o himself_o novel_a 42_o by_o marcellinus_n come_v chron._n come_v in_o chron._n by_o liberatus_n 12._o liberatus_n breviar_n c._n 12._o and_o victor_n of_o tune_n scâlig_n tune_n in_o chron._n edit_n per_fw-la joseph_n scâlig_n and_o do_v not_o menas_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n make_v open_a profession_n of_o obey_v the_o see_v apostolic_a in_o all_o thing_n 4._o thing_n in_o conc._n constan_n sub_fw-la meâ_n act._n 4._o and_o when_o john_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v arrive_v at_o constantinople_n justine_n the_o emperor_n invite_v he_o to_o sit_v in_o a_o seat_n by_o epiphanius_n patriarch_n of_o that_o city_n that_o they_o may_v seem_v both_o to_o be_v of_o equal_a dignity_n john_n refuse_v to_o sit_v until_o according_a to_o the_o prerogative_n of_o his_o see_n a_o throne_n be_v prepare_v for_o he_o above_o epiphanius_n 9_o epiphanius_n nicoph_n l._n 17._o c._n 9_o which_o pass_v in_o the_o city_n of_o constantinople_n itself_o and_o in_o epiphanius_n his_o own_o church_n and_o that_o many_o year_n after_o this_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v make_v evident_o show_v that_o it_o never_o take_v effect_n since_o neither_o epiphanius_n nor_o any_o of_o the_o other_o patriarch_n here_o name_v live_v after_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n claim_v any_o right_n of_o equal_a privilege_n thereby_o but_o all_o of_o they_o remain_v subject_a to_o the_o pope_n as_o before_o the_o council_n they_o have_v be_v and_o that_o which_o pur_v this_o out_o of_o all_o doubt_n be_v that_o albeit_o the_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n at_o length_n obtain_v that_o precedency_n before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n of_o the_o east_n which_o in_o the_o counsel_n of_o constantinople_n and_o chalcedon_n they_o labour_v for_o yet_o nevertheless_o even_o then_o they_o still_o acknowledge_v themselves_o subject_a to_o the_o pope_n witness_n s._n gregory_n who_o write_v to_o john_n b._n of_o syracuse_n say_v â4_n say_v l._n 7._o ep_n â4_n who_o doubt_n but_o
he_o i_o be_o and_o i_o answer_v you_o that_o this_o be_v a_o frivolous_a objection_n for_o as_o onuphrius_n have_v note_v eccles_n note_v tract_n voc_fw-la obscur_v eccles_n the_o name_n of_o pope_n ancient_o until_o after_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n be_v common_a to_o all_o bishop_n of_o great_a city_n as_o of_o rome_n carthage_n alexandria_n antioch_n jerusalem_n and_o the_o like_a and_o you_o afterward_o show_v the_o futility_n of_o your_o objection_n prove_v the_o same_o 241._o same_o pag._n 241._o wherefore_o s._n cyprian_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o christian_n of_o africa_n of_o who_o only_o both_o he_o and_o the_o proconsul_n speak_v do_v call_v he_o their_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v so_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v himself_o to_o be_v pope_n per_fw-la antonomasiam_fw-la for_o in_o that_o sense_n the_o name_n of_o pope_n be_v not_o then_o use_v but_o to_o be_v b._n of_o carthage_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o chief_a father_n and_o primate_n of_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o africa_n how_o then_o prove_v this_o that_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n be_v from_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n appropriate_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o signify_v his_o supreme_a authority_n do_v not_o since_o that_o appropriation_n declare_v he_o to_o be_v pope_n per_fw-la antonomasiam_fw-la for_o word_n signify_v ad_fw-la placitum_fw-la that_o which_o according_a to_o the_o common_a use_n and_o acception_n of_o man_n they_o import_v and_o final_o that_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n when_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n import_v a_o singular_a dignity_n proper_a to_o he_o alone_o be_v convince_v by_o the_o epithet_n which_o ancient_a father_n speak_v to_o he_o add_v to_o that_o name_n as_o when_o they_o call_v he_o universal_a pope_n for_o so_o he_o be_v style_v by_o the_o council_n of_o cyprus_n pap._n cyprus_n ep._n synod_n ad_fw-la theodor._n pap._n by_o s._n athanasius_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o egypt_n pap._n egypt_n ep._n ad_fw-la marc._n pap._n chap._n xxvi_o the_o counsel_n of_o carthage_n and_o milevis_n acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n against_o the_o prerogative_n of_o appeal_n to_o rome_n you_o object_v 141._o object_v pag._n 141._o the_o council_n of_o milevis_n hold_v anno_fw-la 402._o and_o yet_o afterward_o you_o say_v that_o the_o same_o council_n be_v hold_v in_o the_o year_n 416._o and_o cite_v binius_fw-la as_o your_o author_n for_o both_o binius_fw-la speak_v of_o two_o different_a counsel_n hold_v at_o milevis_n in_o those_o several_a year_n and_o under_o different_a consul_n and_o you_o confound_v they_o take_v they_o both_o for_o one_o and_o father_n your_o ignorance_n on_o binius_fw-la and_o with_o like_a ignorance_n you_o affirm_v ibid._n affirm_v ibid._n the_o decree_n touch_v appeal_n to_o have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o council_n of_o milevis_fw-la anno_fw-la 402._o for_o the_o council_n hold_v that_o year_n be_v the_o first_o of_o milevis_n in_o which_o the_o decree_n concern_v appeal_n be_v not_o make_v but_o in_o the_o second_o anno_fw-la 416._o 2._o you_o must_v remember_v that_o when_o bellarmine_n in_o proof_n of_o the_o pope_n universal_a authority_n among_o other_o argument_n produce_v example_n of_o african_a bishop_n institute_v or_o depose_v by_o he_o as_o also_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o appeal_n to_o he_o out_o of_o africa_n you_o answer_v 304._o answer_v pag._n 289._o &_o 304._o that_o the_o african_n be_v within_o the_o pope_n patriarkeship_n which_o you_o call_v his_o diocese_n and_o therefore_o rather_o subject_a to_o he_o then_o to_o other_o if_o then_o the_o african_n be_v within_o the_o pope_n diocese_n they_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o as_o to_o their_o lawful_a judge_n and_o have_v right_a to_o appeal_v to_o he_o and_o he_o to_o admit_v their_o appeal_n and_o judge_v their_o cause_n wherefore_o if_o in_o the_o milevitan_n or_o any_o other_o council_n or_o occasion_n whatsoever_o the_o african_n inhibit_v appeal_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o the_o pope_n their_o inhibition_n be_v a_o act_n of_o disobedience_n and_o rebellion_n against_o their_o lawful_a superior_a and_o no_o less_o a_o crime_n then_o if_o the_o subject_n of_o a_o temporal_a monarch_n shall_v forbid_v appeal_n to_o their_o sovereign_n with_o what_o face_n then_o can_v you_o justify_v they_o therein_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v that_o you_o slander_v they_o injust_o for_o as_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o evident_a then_o that_o the_o council_n of_o carthage_n and_o this_o of_o milevis_n hold_v in_o the_o cause_n of_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la do_v full_o acknowledge_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o profess_v their_o obedience_n to_o he_o both_o in_o word_n and_o deed_n so_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o certain_a then_o that_o they_o deny_v not_o his_o prerogative_n of_o appeal_v without_o which_o his_o authority_n can_v consist_v if_o the_o african_a bishop_n do_v not_o believe_v the_o sovereign_a power_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a why_o do_v s._n cyprian_n address_v his_o council_n hold_v in_o favour_n of_o rebaptisation_n to_o stephen_n pope_n lucifer_n pope_n s_o hierom._n advers_o lucifer_n and_o why_o do_v the_o council_n of_o carthage_n hold_v against_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la send_v their_o decree_n to_o innocentius_n pope_n to_o be_v confirm_v by_o his_o authority_n say_v 92._o say_v aug._n ep_v 92._o this_o our_o proceed_n holy_a lord_n and_o brother_n we_o conceive_v we_o ought_v to_o represent_v to_o your_o charity_n that_o to_o the_o statute_n of_o our_o mediocrity_n may_v be_v add_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a for_o the_o defence_n of_o many_o man_n salvation_n &_o also_o for_o the_o correction_n of_o some_o man_n frowardness_n nor_o do_v they_o require_v this_o of_o innocentius_n by_o way_n of_o charity_n only_o but_o require_v he_o as_o their_o pastor_n to_o take_v compassion_n on_o they_o pastoralibus_fw-la visceribus_fw-la with_o the_o bowel_n of_o mercy_n which_o he_o as_o their_o pastor_n owe_v to_o they_o as_o to_o his_o sheep_n and_o have_v rehearse_v the_o opinion_n of_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la they_o conclude_v what_o other_o thing_n soever_o be_v object_v by_o they_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o that_o your_o reverence_n when_o you_o have_v examine_v the_o decree_n of_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v say_v to_o be_v make_v upon_o this_o occasion_n in_o the_o east_n will_v frame_v such_o a_o judgement_n whereat_o we_o all_o may_v rejoice_v in_o the_o mercy_n of_o god_n innocentius_n have_v receive_v this_o epistle_n praise_v the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n 91._o council_n aug._n ep_v 91._o that_o antiquae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la exempla_fw-la sequentes_fw-la follow_v the_o example_n of_o ancient_a tradition_n and_o know_v what_o be_v due_a to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a they_o have_v send_v their_o decree_n to_o be_v approve_v by_o his_o judgement_n for_o as_o much_o say_v he_o as_o we_o all_o that_o sit_v in_o this_o place_n desire_v to_o follow_v the_o apostle_n himself_o from_o who_o the_o episcopal_a office_n and_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o name_n have_v proceed_v the_o which_o apostle_n we_o follow_v do_v now_o as_o well_o know_v how_o to_o condemn_v evil_a thing_n as_o to_o approve_v those_o which_o be_v worthy_a of_o praise_n and_o then_o declare_v what_o that_o be_v which_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n have_v deliver_v he_o add_v ibid._n add_v ibid._n the_o father_n have_v ordain_v not_o by_o humane_a but_o by_o divine_a sentence_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o account_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v treat_v in_o province_n distant_a and_o far_o of_o to_o be_v end_v until_o first_o it_o be_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a to_o the_o end_n that_o the_o sentence_n which_o shall_v be_v find_v just_a may_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o see_v and_o that_o from_o thence_o all_o other_o church_n as_o stream_n flow_v from_o their_o mother_n source_n and_o run_v with_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o original_n through_o the_o diverse_a region_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n may_v take_v what_o they_o ought_v to_o ordain_v and_o what_o to_o avoid_v in_o like_a manner_n the_o council_n of_o milevis_n write_v to_o the_o same_o pope_n as_o to_o their_o pastor_n 92._o pastor_n aug._n ep_v 92._o because_o our_o lord_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o special_a grace_n have_v place_v you_o in_o the_o apostolic_a see_v vouchsafe_v we_o beseech_v you_o to_o apply_v your_o pastoral_a diligence_n to_o the_o great_a danger_n of_o the_o weak_a member_n of_o christ_n and_o s._n augustine_n who_o be_v present_a at_o this_o council_n and_o secretary_n thereof_o write_v to_o hilary_n of_o the_o same_o subject_n 94._o subject_n ep._n 94._o when_o i_o do_v write_v these_o thing_n we_o know_v that_o a_o decree_n have_v be_v make_v against_o they_o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la in_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n to_o
and_o scot_n not_o celebrate_v easter_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n separate_v from_o her_o communion_n among_o other_o example_n of_o ancient_a church_n which_o you_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o yet_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n you_o produce_v for_o your_o last_o instance_n 158._o instance_n pag._n 156._o 157._o 158._o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n who_o keep_v their_o easter_n if_o not_o whole_o after_o the_o jewish_a manner_n yet_o contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n wherein_o you_o be_v guilty_a of_o diverse_a untruth_n for_o first_o you_o speak_v of_o this_o their_o custom_n as_o ancient_a among_o the_o britan_n whereas_o bede_n 19_o bede_n l._n 2._o hist_o anglo_n c._n 19_o record_v that_o honorius_n pope_n about_o the_o year_n 635._o and_o john_n the_o four_o a_o few_o year_n after_o write_v to_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n letter_n full_a of_o authority_n and_o learning_n for_o correct_v this_o error_n &_o that_o pope_n john_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n 1029._o epistle_n extat_fw-la apud_fw-la bin._n to_o 2._o pag._n 1029._o manifest_o declare_v nuperrime_fw-la temporibus_fw-la istis_fw-la exortam_fw-la esse_fw-la haeresim_fw-la hanc_fw-la that_o this_o heresy_n be_v very_o late_o spring_v up_o among_o they_o which_o florentius_n wigorniensis_n also_o testify_v say_v 628._o say_v in_o chron._n a_o 628._o eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la etc._n etc._n at_o that_o time_n honorius_n pope_n do_v reprove_v the_o error_n of_o the_o quartadeciman_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n spring_v up_o among_o the_o scot_n 2._o you_o attribute_v this_o custom_n to_o the_o britan_n &_o scot_n in_o general_a as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v all_o guilty_a thereof_o whereas_o venerable_a bede_n attribute_n it_o not_o to_o all_o the_o britan_n non_fw-la totis_fw-la say_v he_o 25._o he_o l._n 3_o hist_o cap._n 25._o not_o to_o all_o of_o they_o nor_o to_o all_o the_o scot_n but_o especial_o to_o such_o as_o dwell_v in_o ireland_n and_o also_o to_o some_o of_o they_o that_o dwell_v in_o britain_n beside_o the_o whole_a english_a church_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v free_a from_o that_o error_n 3._o you_o assume_v 190._o assume_v pag._n 190._o as_o grant_v by_o we_o that_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n be_v schismatical_o divide_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o not_o heretical_o that_o their_o opinion_n be_v heretical_a you_o have_v hear_v bede_n testify_v say_v that_o this_o heresy_n be_v very_o late_o spring_v up_o among_o they_o and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v 23._o prove_v chap._n 23._o the_o quartadeciman_o have_v be_v long_o before_o that_o time_n anathematise_v by_o the_o three_o first_o general_a counsel_n of_o nice_a constantinople_n and_o ephesus_n and_o the_o maintainer_n of_o that_o error_n register_v for_o heretic_n by_o philastrius_n s._n augustine_n theodoret_n and_o other_o all_o which_o notwithstanding_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v init_fw-la say_v pag._n 157._o init_fw-la that_o the_o britain_n church_n do_v orthodoxal_o in_o follow_v the_o quartadociman_n rite_n contrary_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o though_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n in_o this_o their_o observation_n do_v disagree_v from_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n yet_o because_o they_o do_v it_o not_o with_o a_o schismatical_a intention_n but_o out_o of_o simplicity_n and_o ignorance_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a computation_n they_o live_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n whither_o no_o learned_a catholic_a calculator_n of_o time_n have_v as_o yet_o come_v unto_o they_o the_o see_v apostolic_a do_v still_o retain_v they_o in_o her_o communion_n deem_v this_o error_n pardonable_a in_o they_o and_o therefore_o when_o the_o abbot_n colmanus_n in_o the_o famous_a conference_n hold_v between_o he_o and_o wilfridus_n concern_v this_o matter_n urge_v in_o defence_n of_o their_o custom_n 25._o custom_n apud_fw-la bed_n l._n 3._o hist._n c._n 25._o that_o they_o can_v not_o believe_v that_o their_o reverend_a father_n columba_n and_o his_o successor_n be_v man_n so_o belove_v of_o god_n do_v contrary_a to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n in_o celebrate_v easter_n as_o until_o that_o time_n they_o have_v do_v wilfride_n answer_v ibid._n answer_v ibid._n i_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o your_o father_n be_v servant_n of_o god_n and_o belove_v of_o he_o who_o they_o love_v with_o a_o rude_a kind_n of_o simplicity_n but_o with_o a_o godly_a intention_n nor_o do_v i_o think_v that_o this_o their_o observation_n of_o easter_n be_v great_o hurtful_a unto_o they_o so_o long_o as_o none_o have_v come_v to_o they_o to_o inform_v they_o of_o the_o decree_n of_o more_o perfection_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v observe_v for_o i_o believe_v that_o if_o a_o catholic_a calculator_n have_v come_v unto_o they_o they_o will_v have_v follow_v his_o admonition_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o say_v baronius_n 5._o baronius_n anno_fw-la 604._o n._n 5._o it_o seem_v not_o good_a to_o the_o catholic_a church_n to_o blotout_a of_o the_o catalogue_n of_o saint_n such_o man_n as_o have_v live_v among_o they_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n and_o who_o god_n have_v illustrate_v with_o miracle_n 5._o but_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o scottish_a and_o british_a church_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o the_o roman_a you_o allege_v mark_fw-mi allege_v pag._n 157._o mark_fw-mi galfridus_n out_o of_o the_o centurist_n say_v dinothus_n a_o learned_a abbot_n prove_v with_o many_o argument_n that_o they_o owe_v no_o subjection_n to_o augustine_n who_o s._n gregory_n have_v send_v to_o preach_v the_o faith_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o english_a this_o be_v a_o falsification_n which_o therefore_o you_o vent_v in_o the_o centurist_n name_n for_o galfridus_n have_v not_o any_o one_o word_n of_o the_o britan_n or_o scot_n no-subiection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o only_o a_o passionate_a and_o choleric_a speech_n of_o the_o britan_n not_o acknowledge_v any_o superiority_n of_o augustine_n over_o they_o see_v he_o be_v send_v only_o to_o the_o english_a and_o that_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o own_o archbishop_n be_v not_o take_v away_o by_o his_o come_n for_o aught_o they_o know_v which_o question_n of_o jurisdiction_n fall_v out_o daily_o between_o bishop_n even_o where_o the_o pope_n authority_n be_v most_o acknowledge_v yea_o moreover_o that_o both_o the_o britan_n and_o scot_n acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n over_o they_o galfridus_n against_o you_o and_o your_o centurist_n bear_v witness_v report_v 11._o report_v l._n 9_o c._n 12._o &_o 11._o that_o on_o the_o day_n of_o pentecost_n at_o chester_n king_n arthur_n be_v present_a there_o be_v a_o great_a meeting_n of_o prince_n lord_n and_o bishop_n for_o his_o coronation_n and_o that_o of_o three_o archbishop_n which_o britain_n have_v at_o that_o time_n of_o chester_n london_n and_o york_n dubritius_fw-la archbishop_n of_o chester_n be_v primate_n of_o britain_n and_o legate_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a do_v the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n and_o crown_v king_n arthur_n if_o therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v his_o legate_n in_o britain_n and_o that_o no_o less_o a_o man_n then_o the_o primate_n of_o all_o britain_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o britan_n acknowledge_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a oâer_n they_o which_o be_v yet_o make_v more_o evident_a because_o as_o your_o bale_n 30._o bale_n de_fw-fr script_n eceles_n fol._n 30._o confess_v david_n that_o famous_a welsh_a bishop_n be_v canonize_v by_o pope_n calixtus_n the_o second_o and_o not_o only_a bale_n but_o s._n prosper_n 432.434_o prosper_n chron._n ân_n 432.434_o bede_n 17._o bede_n l._n 1._o hist_o c._n 13._o &_o 17._o and_o marianus_n scotus_n 430._o scotus_n chron._n a_o 430._o write_v that_o celestine_n pope_n send_v palladius_n and_o germanus_n learned_a bishop_n into_o britain_n to_o extirpate_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n and_o to_o reduce_v the_o scot_n to_o true_a piety_n and_o patricius_n who_o have_v study_v divinity_n in_o rome_n and_o be_v a_o man_n most_o excellent_a in_o learning_n and_o sanctity_n to_o the_o irish_a and_o scot_n to_o defend_v they_o from_o the_o same_o heresy_n all_o which_o show_v that_o aswell_o the_o britan_n as_o also_o the_o scot_n &_o irish_a even_o before_o the_o come_n of_o s._n augustine_n be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v supreme_a care_n over_o they_o in_o spiritual_a affair_n since_o he_o appoint_v they_o bishop_n from_o rome_n just_o therefore_o may_v we_o conclude_v that_o your_o deny_v the_o subirction_n of_o the_o british_a scotish_n and_o irish_a church_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n at_o the_o time_n of_o s._n augustine_n come_v into_o this_o island_n to_o preach_v to_o the_o english_a be_v ground_v
in_o any_o thing_n he_o have_v err_v and_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o pope_n authority_n of_o a_o judge_n we_o be_v ready_a say_v he_o to_o be_v judge_v by_o you_o provide_v that_o they_o which_o slander_v we_o may_v appear_v face_n to_o face_n with_o we_o before_o your_o reverence_n do_v all_o this_o import_n nothing_o but_o a_o request_n of_o love_a and_o brotherly_a visitation_n or_o consideration_n can_v s._n basil_n in_o more_o effectual_a word_n express_v the_o pope_n power_n and_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n then_o by_o request_v he_o to_o send_v his_o legate_n with_o authority_n to_o annul_v the_o act_n of_o a_o general_a council_n as_o that_o of_o arimin_n be_v no_o they_o be_v testimony_n so_o forcible_a that_o with_o no_o gloss_n can_v be_v elude_v but_o you_o reply_v 194._o reply_v pag._n 194._o against_o bellarmine_n that_o he_o will_v needs_o have_v s._n basil_n to_o desire_v the_o pope_n decree_n whereas_o baronius_n read_v counsel_n or_o advice_n here_o again_o you_o cavil_v for_o the_o greek_a word_n be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d which_o by_o interpretation_n of_o budaeus_fw-la signify_v voluntatem_fw-la sententiam_fw-la iudicium_fw-la why_o then_o be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o bellarmine_n to_o say_v s._n basil_n desire_v the_o pope_n decree_n for_o to_o desire_v he_o to_o give_v his_o sentence_n and_o judgement_n what_o be_v it_o else_o but_o to_o acknowledge_v in_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n with_o power_n to_o sentence_n to_o judge_v to_o decree_v ecclesiastical_a cause_n in_o the_o east_n which_o power_n he_o also_o declare_v in_o other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n for_o do_v not_o both_o he_o 74._o he_o ep._n 73._o al._n 74._o and_o s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n clede_n nazianzen_n epist_n ad_fw-la clede_n testify_v that_o eustathius_n b._n of_o sebaste_n by_o virtue_n of_o liberius_n his_o letter_n present_v to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o his_o command_n intimate_v in_o they_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a eastern_a church_n and_o restore_v to_o his_o see_n eustathius_n say_v s._n basil_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n have_v be_v cast_v out_o of_o his_o bishopric_n because_o he_o be_v depose_v in_o the_o synod_n of_o melitine_n advise_v himself_o to_o find_v mean_n to_o be_v restore_v travail_v to_o you_o of_o the_o thing_n that_o be_v propose_v to_o he_o by_o the_o most_o bless_a bishop_n liberius_n and_o what_o submission_n be_v make_v we_o know_v not_o only_o he_o bring_v a_o letter_n that_o restore_v he_o which_o be_v show_v to_o the_o council_n of_o tyana_n he_o be_v reestablish_v in_o his_o bishop_n seat_n again_o do_v not_o s._n basil_n 77._o basil_n ep._n 77._o compare_v the_o church_n to_o a_o body_n whereof_o the_o western_a part_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v be_v the_o head_n and_o the_o eastern_a the_o foot_n and_o do_v he_o not_o from_o this_o very_a metaphor_n denominate_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o all_o other_o bishop_n fellow-member_n of_o the_o same_o body_n 1603._o body_n ep._n 70._o ad_fw-la episc_n transmar_n edit_fw-la paris_n a_o 1603._o again_o do_v he_o not_o beseech_v pope_n damasus_n ibid._n damasus_n ibid._n to_o send_v legate_n with_o order_n to_o examine_v the_o accusation_n lay_v to_o his_o charge_n and_o to_o appoint_v a_o place_n for_o he_o to_o meet_v they_o that_o his_o cause_n may_v be_v judge_v by_o they_o and_o he_o punish_v if_o he_o be_v find_v guilty_a and_o do_v he_o not_o require_v the_o same_o pope_n 74._o pope_n ep._n 74._o to_o give_v order_n by_o his_o letter_n to_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n that_o they_o admit_v into_o their_o communion_n all_o such_o as_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a truth_n shall_v disclaim_v from_o their_o error_n and_o to_o renounce_v the_o communion_n of_o they_o that_o shall_v persist_v obstinate_o in_o their_o novelty_n and_o last_o declare_v the_o pope_n authority_n in_o determine_v all_o doubt_n and_o controversy_n of_o faith_n he_o say_v in_o very_a deed_n that_o which_o be_v give_v by_o our_o lord_n to_o your_o piety_n be_v worthy_a of_o that_o most_o excellent_a voice_n which_o proclaim_v you_o bless_v to_o wit_n that_o you_o may_v discern_v between_o that_o which_o be_v counterfeit_a and_o that_o which_o be_v lawful_a and_o pure_a and_o without_o any_o diminution_n may_v preach_v the_o faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n i_o conclude_v therefore_o that_o if_o s._n basil_n believe_v aright_o the_o pope_n have_v authority_n to_o restore_v bishop_n depose_v to_o their_o see_v to_o send_v legate_n with_o power_n to_o dissolve_v the_o act_n of_o general_a counsel_n to_o condemn_v heretical_a doctrine_n to_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n to_o punish_v delinquent_n and_o be_v this_o nothing_o else_o but_o charitable_a advice_n but_o persuasion_n but_o counsel_n be_v it_o not_o to_o use_v authority_n to_o exercise_v jurisdiction_n but_o you_o object_n 1â6_n object_n pag._n 1â6_n that_o s._n basil_n in_o his_o own_o name_n and_o in_o the_o name_n of_o his_o fellow_n bishop_n in_o the_o east_n have_v write_v often_o to_o pope_n damasus_n and_o other_o western_a bishop_n and_o send_v to_o rome_n four_o several_a legation_n require_v help_n and_o comfort_n from_o they_o in_o their_o affliction_n can_v not_o receive_v any_o answer_n in_o so_o much_o that_o s._n basil_n tax_v they_o with_o supercilious_a pride_n &_o haughtiness_n and_o that_o they_o do_v neither_o know_v the_o truth_n nor_o will_v learn_v it_o this_o you_o object_n out_o of_o baronius_n from_o who_o you_o may_v have_v take_v the_o solution_n which_o be_v that_o s._n basil_n be_v oppress_v and_o as_o it_o be_v overwhelm_v with_o wave_n of_o sorrow_n and_o affliction_n not_o only_o for_o the_o common_a calamity_n of_o the_o oriental_a church_n but_o also_o for_o his_o own_o particular_a for_o as_o much_o as_o by_o eustathius_n b._n of_o sebaste_n and_o other_o who_o hide_v the_o venom_n of_o their_o heresy_n feign_v themselves_o to_o be_v catholic_n he_o be_v accuse_v and_o defame_v of_o heresy_n in_o the_o east_n and_o bring_v into_o suspicion_n even_o with_o his_o own_o monk_n and_o his_o dear_o belove_v neocaesarians_n and_o this_o make_v he_o likewise_o not_o to_o be_v well_o think_v of_o in_o the_o west_n in_o so_o much_o that_o damasus_n pope_n for_o a_o time_n desist_v from_o that_o familiar_a communication_n by_o letter_n which_o basil_n expect_v and_o differ_v the_o send_n of_o legate_n to_o examine_v his_o cause_n and_o clear_v the_o truth_n which_o he_o have_v require_v &_o great_o desire_v yet_o as_o you_o 198._o you_o pag._n 198._o confess_v be_v he_o than_o a_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n both_o in_o faith_n and_o charity_n nor_o be_v damasus_n so_o whole_o want_v to_o his_o comfort_n but_o that_o even_o then_o when_o he_o be_v suspect_v of_o heresy_n upon_o his_o letter_n he_o call_v a_o council_n at_o rome_n in_o which_o he_o condemn_v apollinarius_n vitalis_n and_o timotheus_n 25._o timotheus_n baron_fw-fr anno_o 373._o sozo_n l._n 6._o c._n 25._o call_v vitalis_n to_o rome_n and_o excommunicate_v timotheus_n as_o he_o testify_v in_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o eastern_a bishop_n 11._o bishop_n apud_fw-la theodo_fw-la l._n 5._o histor_n c._n 11._o express_v withal_o the_o profession_n which_o they_o have_v make_v to_o he_o of_o their_o belief_n of_o the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o if_o s._n basil_n in_o these_o affliction_n and_o grieve_v at_o the_o intermission_n of_o such_o communicatory_a letter_n from_o the_o western_a bishop_n and_o chief_o from_o damasus_n as_o he_o expect_v let_v fall_v from_o his_o mouth_n some_o hasty_a word_n as_o other_o holy_a man_n who_o baronius_n 373._o baronius_n an._n 373._o name_v in_o like_a occasion_n have_v do_v be_v that_o by_o you_o to_o be_v reproach_v unto_o he_o or_o be_v it_o any_o argument_n of_o his_o denial_n of_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v so_o clear_o so_o constant_o so_o effectual_o in_o so_o many_o place_n of_o his_o work_n yea_o albeit_o s._n basil_n give_v a_o little_a way_n to_o the_o motion_n of_o nature_n yet_o by_o virtue_n he_o soon_o recall_v himself_o retract_v what_o he_o have_v say_v as_o his_o letter_n full_a of_o humility_n write_v soon_o after_o to_o damasus_n &_o the_o other_o western_a bishop_n express_v you_o say_v addiâ_n say_v ep._n 1._o in_o addiâ_n he_o be_v praise_v by_o all_o mortal_a man_n that_o you_o remain_v pure_a and_o without_o blemish_n in_o faith_n keep_v entire_a the_o doctrine_n teach_v you_o by_o the_o apostle_n it_o be_v not_o so_o with_o we_o among_o who_o there_o be_v some_o
citation_n and_o application_n of_o these_o attribute_n you_o deal_v not_o upright_o as_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o canisius_n from_o who_o you_o take_v they_o pat._n they_o catechisinit_fw-la in_o encorn_n pat._n but_o leave_v that_o to_o the_o reader_n examination_n your_o own_o answer_n destroy_v itself_o for_o those_o ascription_n you_o confess_v import_v no_o authority_n but_o do_v the_o title_n of_o rector_n or_o governor_n import_v no_o authority_n as_o the_o power_n &_o authority_n of_o the_o head_n of_o a_o college_n or_o governor_n of_o a_o commonwealth_n can_v be_v better_a or_o more_o effectual_o express_v then_o by_o say_v he_o be_v rector_n of_o the_o college_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o commonwealth_n so_o if_o s._n ambrose_n have_v study_v to_o confute_v your_o answer_n and_o express_v the_o pope_n monarchical_a power_n &_o authority_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n he_o can_v not_o have_v do_v it_o more_o effectual_o then_o by_o still_v he_o rector_n or_o governor_n of_o the_o house_n of_o god_n which_o be_v his_o church_n for_o that_o title_n never_o be_v nor_o can_v ever_o be_v give_v to_o any_o other_o but_o to_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n who_o christ_n have_v make_v pastor_n &_o governor_n of_o his_o whole_a flock_n seqq_n flock_n joan._n 21.15_o &_o seqq_n and_o to_o this_o s._n ambrose_n allude_v 81._o allude_v l._n 10._o ep_n 81._o when_o write_v to_o siricius_n pope_n he_o call_v he_o a_o watchful_a and_o povident_a pastor_n that_o with_o pious_a solicitude_n defend_v the_o flock_n of_o christ_n from_o wolf_n that_o be_v from_o heretic_n 3._o what_o s._n ambrose_n his_o judgement_n be_v concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o declare_v when_o write_v to_o siricius_n pope_n of_o certain_a heretic_n who_o he_o have_v condemn_v he_o say_v ibid._n say_v ibid._n who_o your_o holiness_n have_v condemn_v know_v that_o we_o also_o hold_v they_o condemn_v according_a to_o your_o judgement_n s._n ambrose_n be_v fare_v more_o learned_a than_o siricius_n and_o yet_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o determine_v cause_n of_o faith_n and_o condemn_v heresy_n he_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o siricius_n impertinent_o therefore_o do_v you_o object_n 214._o object_n pag._n 214._o to_o prove_v s._n ambrose_n his_o no-subiection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o pope_n ask_v his_o judgement_n concern_v the_o day_n of_o easter_n for_o a_o counsellor_n may_v be_v more_o learned_a than_o a_o king_n &_o the_o king_n may_v ask_v his_o judgement_n and_o yet_o the_o authority_n of_o determine_v the_o cause_n be_v not_o in_o the_o counsellor_n but_o in_o the_o king_n and_o the_o counsel_n or_o though_o he_o be_v more_o learned_a be_v subject_a and_o bind_v to_o obey_v the_o king_n as_o s._n ambrose_n be_v and_o acknowledge_v himself_o bind_v to_o obey_v siricius_n nor_o do_v you_o find_v we_o to_o hold_v that_o the_o pope_n in_o his_o determination_n ought_v not_o to_o proceed_v prudent_o ask_v the_o advice_n of_o learned_a man_n 4._o to_o prove_v that_o s._n ambrose_n acknowledge_v no_o subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n you_o report_v 214._o report_v pag._n 214._o out_o of_o baronius_n that_o certain_a clergyman_n of_o milan_n 670._o year_n after_o the_o death_n of_o s._n ambrose_n call_v the_o bishopric_n of_o milan_n s._n ambrose_n his_o church_n and_o withstand_v petrus_n damianus_n the_o pope_n legate_n allege_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ambrose_n have_v be_v always_o free_a in_o itself_o and_o never_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n but_o why_o do_v you_o conceal_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o history_n the_o ancient_a splendour_n and_o beauty_n of_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n be_v deface_v and_o great_o decay_v partly_o by_o the_o impurity_n of_o clergyman_n that_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o nicolaites_n live_v incontinent_o and_o obstinate_o defend_v the_o same_o to_o be_v lawful_a and_o partly_o by_o simoniacal_a priest_n the_o people_n of_o milan_n send_v legate_n to_o the_o pope_n beseech_v he_o to_o commiserate_v the_o lamentable_a state_n and_o cure_v the_o desperate_a disease_n of_o that_o famous_a church_n the_o pope_n not_o leo_n the_o nine_o as_o you_o mistake_v but_o nicolas_n the_o second_o between_o who_o and_o leo_n there_o be_v other_o two_o pope_n victor_n and_o stephen_n condescend_v to_o so_o just_a a_o request_n send_v two_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n petrus_n damiani_n cardinal_n of_o ostia_n &_o anselme_n b._n of_o luca_n as_o his_o legate_n to_o visit_v that_o church_n and_o arm_v they_o with_o his_o own_o authority_n to_o correct_v the_o offender_n and_o ordain_v whatsoever_o shall_v be_v think_v expedient_a for_o the_o reformation_n of_o so_o great_a disorder_n the_o legate_n be_v arrive_v at_o milan_n have_v no_o soon_o intimate_v their_o commission_n but_o the_o people_n stir_v up_o by_o those_o lewd_a and_o factious_a clergyman_n begin_v to_o oppose_v they_o allege_v that_o the_o church_n of_o ambrose_n have_v be_v always_o free_a in_o itself_o and_o never_o subject_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n these_o be_v the_o only_a word_n which_o you_o cull_v out_o of_o baronius_n whole_a narration_n leave_v out_o what_o precede_v and_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o what_o follow_v which_o be_v that_o petrus_n damiani_n step_v up_o into_o the_o pulpit_n after_o he_o have_v quiet_v the_o people_n prove_v effectual_o the_o sovereign_a authority_n grant_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n over_o all_o church_n &_o that_o whosoever_o deny_v that_o authority_n be_v a_o heretic_n the_o people_n give_v ear_n to_o his_o word_n be_v appease_v and_o with_o one_o accord_n promise_v to_o do_v whatsoever_o he_o shall_v ordain_v there_o be_v present_v a_o great_a number_n of_o clergyman_n and_o scarce_o any_o of_o they_o that_o have_v not_o be_v promote_v to_o order_n by_o simony_n for_o the_o remedy_n of_o so_o great_a a_o mischief_n the_o legate_n require_v from_o guido_n the_o archbishop_n a_o inviolable_a caution_n and_o promise_n not_o to_o admit_v any_o from_o thence_o forward_o to_o holy_a order_n for_o money_n and_o also_o to_o root_v out_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o nicolaites_n whereunto_o he_o willing_o yield_v with_o imprecation_n of_o god_n wrath_n and_o revenge_n on_o himself_o if_o he_o perform_v it_o not_o he_o give_v this_o caution_n in_o writing_n &_o the_o priest_n and_o clerk_n subscribe_v unto_o it_o which_o be_v do_v he_o prostrate_v himself_o on_o the_o ground_n ask_v penance_n of_o the_o legate_n for_o his_o offence_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o clergyman_n admit_v penance_n be_v reconcile_v in_o time_n of_o mass_n and_o receive_v new_a ornament_n from_o the_o bishop_n hand_n have_v first_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n in_o which_o they_o anathematise_v all_o heresy_n extol_v themselves_o against_o the_o holy_a catholic_a and_o apostolic_a church_n &_o particular_o those_o of_o the_o nicolaites_n and_o symonian_o this_o be_v the_o story_n and_o what_o great_a folly_n can_v there_o be_v then_o to_o argue_v that_o s._n ambrose_n a_o most_o holy_a and_o learned_a doctor_n oppose_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n because_o a_o few_o lewd_a heretical_a clergyman_n of_o milan_n 670._o year_n after_o his_o death_n disclaim_v from_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v hold_v on_o their_o damnable_a course_n and_o escape_v that_o punishment_n which_o their_o offence_n so_o just_o deserve_v and_o can_v there_o be_v a_o great_a imposture_n then_o to_o allege_v a_o few_o rash_a word_n utter_v by_o the_o people_n at_o the_o instigation_n of_o those_o heretic_n &_o to_o conceal_v that_o they_o together_o with_o the_o people_n &_o archbishop_n be_v admonish_v by_o the_o pope_n legate_n acknowledge_v their_o error_n with_o hearty_a sorrow_n and_o promise_v of_o amendment_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a by_o this_o a_o judicious_a reader_n will_v perceive_v that_o you_o neither_o regard_v what_o you_o allege_v true_a or_o false_a nor_o stick_v to_o patronize_v vice_n and_o heresy_n in_o they_o that_o with_o you_o will_v oppose_v the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o you_o that_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o disobedience_n why_o do_v you_o not_o also_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o repentance_n when_o theodosius_n in_o excuse_n of_o the_o great_a slaughter_n he_o have_v make_v at_o thessalonica_n allege_v to_o s._n ambrose_n that_o king_n david_n also_o have_v offend_v commit_v adultery_n and_o murder_n s._n ambrose_n answer_v ambros_n answer_v paulinus_n in_o vita_fw-la ambros_n secutus_fw-la es_fw-la errantem_fw-la sequere_fw-la poenitentem_fw-la as_o you_o have_v follow_v david_n in_o his_o fin_n so_o follow_v he_o in_o his_o repentance_n and_o if_o he_o be_v now_o live_v he_o will_v
in_o like_a manner_n answer_v you_o that_o as_o you_o have_v follow_v some_o wicked_a clergyman_n of_o his_o church_n in_o their_o disobedience_n to_o the_o see_v apostolic_a so_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o repentance_n and_o both_o he_o and_o they_o will_v condemn_v you_o of_o great_a perfidiousness_n in_o proclaim_v their_o sin_n and_o conceal_v their_o amendment_n 5._o you_o object_n 214.215_o object_n pag._n 214.215_o that_o s._n ambrose_n refuse_v to_o follow_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o the_o custom_n of_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o infant_n be_v baptize_v which_o say_v you_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n judge_v to_o be_v superfluous_a but_o contrariwise_o ambrose_n and_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n hold_v to_o be_v necessary_a your_o custom_n be_v to_o borrow_v argument_n from_o catholic_a writer_n and_o suppress_v their_o solution_n this_o you_o borrow_v from_o bellarmine_n 16._o bellarmine_n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 16._o as_o you_o do_v many_o other_o in_o he_o read_v the_o answer_n it_o shall_v suffife_n i_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n oblige_v not_o other_o church_n to_o use_v or_o omit_v all_o the_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n which_o she_o use_v or_o omit_v in_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o other_o ecclesiastical_a office_n in_o such_o as_o be_v of_o themselves_o indifferent_a she_o command_v nothing_o as_o you_o have_v hear_v 3._o hear_v champ_n 2d_o sect_n 3._o but_o leave_v freedom_n to_o other_o church_n to_o follow_v their_o own_o custom_n such_o be_v the_o ceremony_n of_o wash_v the_o foot_n of_o infant_n baptize_v which_o though_o she_o practise_v not_o she_o condemn_v not_o and_o therefore_o it_o be_v free_a for_o the_o church_n of_o milan_n to_o use_v it_o without_o any_o disobedience_n at_o all_o to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n if_o you_o have_v not_o be_v mind_v to_o trifle_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v that_o s._n ambrose_n disobey_v the_o roman_a church_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n as_o you_o do_v this_o you_o can_v prove_v both_o because_o s._n augustine_n have_v testify_v 2._o testify_v cont._n julia_n pelag._n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o that_o in_o the_o work_n of_o bless_a ambrose_n the_o roman_a faith_n great_o shine_v &_o also_o because_o he_o himself_o define_v a_o catholic_a bishop_n to_o be_v one_o that_o a_o gree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n satyri_fw-la church_n orat._n de_fw-fr obitu_fw-la satyri_fw-la and_o protest_v to_o siricius_n 81._o siricius_n l._n 10._o ep_n 81._o that_o who_o the_o roman_a church_n condemn_v he_o follow_v her_o judgement_n hold_v in_o like_a manner_n condemn_v of_o which_o number_n you_o be_v one_o sect_n viii_o s._n augustine_n judgement_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o bishop_n thereof_o s._n augustine_n judgement_n be_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n which_o he_o profess_v say_v 162._o say_v ep._n 162._o in_o she_o have_v always_o flourish_v the_o princedom_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a princedom_n i_o say_v not_o only_a principality_n of_o order_n as_o you_o comment_v but_o of_o true_a power_n and_o authority_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n as_o have_v be_v effectual_o prove_v 2._o prove_v chap._n 17._o sect_n 2._o and_o the_o ensue_a testimony_n of_o s._n augustine_n shall_v further_o confirm_v for_o herein_o he_o declare_v his_o judgement_n when_o together_o with_o all_o the_o father_n of_o the_o milevitan_a council_n to_o which_o he_o be_v secretary_n he_o write_v to_o innocentius_n pope_n â2_n pope_n ep._n â2_n for_o as_o much_o as_o god_n by_o the_o gift_n of_o his_o principal_a grace_n have_v place_v you_o in_o the_o apostolic_a see_v and_o grant_v you_o to_o be_v such_o in_o our_o day_n as_o we_o ought_v rather_o to_o fear_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v impute_v to_o we_o for_o a_o crime_n of_o negligence_n if_o we_o shall_v conceal_v from_o your_o reverence_n those_o thing_n which_o for_o the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v represent_v to_o you_o then_o to_o imagine_v that_o you_o can_v receive_v they_o disdainful_o or_o negligent_o we_o beseech_v you_o to_o apply_v your_o pastoral_n diligence_n to_o the_o great_a peril_n of_o the_o weak_a member_n of_o christ._n you_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o s._n augustine_n with_o the_o whole_a council_n in_o these_o word_n require_v the_o pope_n pastoral_a diligence_n for_o the_o repress_v of_o the_o pelagian_a heresy_n in_o palestine_n and_o africa_n but_o your_o answer_n be_v 218._o be_v pag._n 218._o that_o john_n the_o first_o writing_n to_o a_o archbishop_n grant_v that_o the_o charge_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o help_n of_o all_o in_o repress_v of_o heresy_n be_v commit_v to_o he_o as_o well_o as_o to_o himself_o &_o that_o every_o patriarch_n have_v a_o principality_n and_o height_n of_o a_o pastoral_n watchtower_n above_o all_o metropolitan_o and_o bishop_n and_o yet_o have_v they_o not_o over_o all_o bishop_n power_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o these_o evasion_n i_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o be_v vain_a and_o not_o without_o imposture_n 3._o imposture_n see_v above_o chap._n 19_o sect_n 3._o that_o every_o bishop_n ought_v to_o concur_v to_o the_o help_n of_o all_o in_o repress_v of_o heresy_n we_o deny_v not_o but_o we_o deny_v that_o every_o bishop_n have_v a_o watchtower_n of_o pastoral_a authority_n to_o judge_v and_o condemn_v heretic_n whersoever_o out_o of_o his_o own_o diocese_n as_o s._n augustine_n and_o the_o milevitan_a father_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v out_o of_o his_o diocese_n and_o patriarkship_n of_o rome_n require_v he_o to_o condemn_v by_o his_o pastoral_a authority_n the_o pelagian_o in_o africa_n &_o palestine_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n power_n herein_o exceed_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o all_o other_o bishop_n s._n augustine_n profess_v write_v to_o boniface_n pope_n 1._o pope_n cont._n dvas_fw-la epist._n palag_n l._n 1._o c._n 1._o thou_o disdain_v not_o to_o be_v afrend_v of_o the_o humble_a though_o thou_o be_v place_v in_o a_o high_a government_n and_o again_o ibid._n again_o ibid._n the_o pastoral_a watch_n be_v common_a to_o we_o all_o that_o have_v the_o office_n of_o bishop_n but_o thou_o be_v supereminent_a in_o a_o high_a degree_n and_o yet_o further_o he_o declare_v this_o supereminent_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o extend_v itself_o over_o all_o the_o world_n write_v to_o optatus_n 157._o optatus_n ep._n 157._o pelagius_n and_o celestius_fw-la by_o the_o vigilancy_n of_o two_o episcopal_a counsel_n with_o the_o help_n of_o god_n who_o undertake_v the_o protection_n of_o his_o church_n have_v be_v condemn_v in_o the_o extent_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n by_o two_o reverend_a prelate_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v pope_n innocentius_n and_o pope_n sozimus_n if_o then_o s._n augustine_n believe_v aright_o the_o pope_n have_v pastoral_a power_n to_o repress_v and_o condemn_v heretic_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n which_o other_o bishop_n have_v not_o their_o pastoral_a power_n be_v confine_v to_o the_o limit_n of_o their_o own_o diocese_n your_o objection_n against_o this_o be_v 1._o 219.210_o 1._o pag._n 219.210_o that_o s._n augustine_n speak_v of_o stephen_n b._n of_o rome_n and_o cyprian_a of_o carthage_n call_v they_o two_o bishop_n of_o most_o eminent_a church_n ergo_fw-la the_o b._n of_o rome_n have_v not_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o b._n of_o carthage_n for_o there_o can_v be_v two_o most_o eminents_n your_o consequence_n be_v untrue_a and_o such_o you_o must_v confess_v it_o to_o be_v for_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v patriarch_n of_o all_o the_o west_n the_o b._n of_o carthage_n be_v subject_a unto_o he_o as_o you_o forget_v yourself_o afterward_o acknowledge_v 2â9_n acknowledge_v pag._n 2â9_n wherefore_o s._n augustine_n call_v stephen_n and_o cyprian_n two_o bishop_n of_o two_o most_o eminent_a church_n intend_v not_o to_o deny_v the_o subordination_n of_o cyprian_a to_o stephen_n nor_o of_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n to_o that_o of_o rome_n but_o only_o to_o signify_v that_o as_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v most_o eminent_a by_o reason_n of_o her_o patriarchall_a power_n over_o the_o west_n and_o her_o primacy_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n so_o the_o church_n of_o carthage_n be_v also_o most_o eminent_a though_o in_o a_o inferior_a degree_n by_o reason_n of_o her_o primacy_n over_o all_o africa_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n both_o those_o church_n ââe_v most-eminent_a the_o one_o over_o all_o africa_n and_o the_o other_o over_o all_o the_o world_n your_o second_o objection_n of_o the_o saturday-fast_a 220._o saturday-fast_a pag._n 220._o your_o three_o of_o the_o denial_n of_o appeal_v out_o of_o africa_n to_o rome_n 221._o rome_n pag._n 221._o your_o four_o concern_v the_o cause_n of_o cecilian_a ibid._n cecilian_a ibid._n your_o five_o of_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o hebrews_n whether_o in_o s._n augustine_n
confiderat_fw-la when_o he_o call_v eugenius_n pope_n the_o god_n of_o pharaoh_n as_o god_n call_v moses_n do_v ladislaus_n that_o famous_a king_n of_o hungary_n blaspheme_v when_o he_o call_v nicolas_n the_o five_o a_o god_n upon_o earth_n 5._o earth_n orat._n ad_fw-la nicol._n 5._o acknowledge_v then_o that_o this_o your_o objection_n be_v a_o imposterous_a cavil_n against_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n or_o rather_o a_o calumny_n invent_v to_o maintain_v a_o bad_a cause_n which_o with_o other_o argument_n you_o can_v uphold_v chap._n xxxvi_o the_o nullity_n of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n discover_v sect_n i._o some_o of_o his_o answer_n examine_v what_o have_v be_v produce_v hitherto_o out_o of_o antiquity_n convince_o prove_v the_o universal_a authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n to_o have_v be_v acknowledge_v from_o the_o begin_n by_o all_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n here_o you_o undertake_v to_o answer_n the_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n allege_v by_o bellarmine_n but_o perform_v it_o not_o some_o of_o they_o you_o pass_v over_o not_o only_o without_o answer_n but_o without_o any_o mention_n of_o they_o as_o of_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n venerable_a bede_n s._n anselme_n hugo_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la and_o s._n bernard_n who_o yet_o caluin_n 22._o caluin_n l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 7._o §._o 22._o cite_v for_o himself_o &_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o saint_n 2._o to_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n ignatius_n and_o irenaeus_n you_o answer_v but_o satisfy_v not_o as_o have_v be_v prove_v 6._o prove_v chap._n 15._o sect_n 5._o &_o 6._o and_o the_o like_a have_v be_v show_v of_o your_o answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o s._n basil_n 4._o basil_n chap._n 34._o sect_n 4._o and_o justinian_n 5._o justinian_n chap._n 30._o sect_n 5._o the_o emperor_n 3._o of_o s._n prosper_v you_o say_v init_fw-la say_v pag._n 270._o fin_n 271._o init_fw-la his_o meaning_n may_v have_v be_v better_o know_v if_o he_o have_v write_v in_o prose_n and_o not_o assume_v unto_o he_o the_o liberty_n of_o a_o poet._n but_o who_o see_v not_o this_o to_o be_v a_o mere_a shift_n void_a of_o truth_n for_o as_o in_o verse_n he_o say_v 2._o say_v l._n de_fw-fr ingrat_fw-la c._n 2._o now_o rome_n the_o great_a apostle_n peter_n seat_n head_n of_o pastoral_n honour_n here_o below_o have_v by_o faith_n empire_n make_v herself_o more_o great_a than_o she_o by_o all_o her_o arm_a power_n can_v grow_v so_o likewise_o he_o say_v in_o prose_n 16._o prose_n de_fw-fr vocat_fw-la gentium_fw-la c._n 16._o the_o sovereignty_n of_o the_o apostolical_a priesthood_n have_v make_v rome_n great_a by_o the_o tribunal_n of_o religion_n then_o by_o the_o throne_n of_o power_n bellarmine_n allege_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o as_o well_o in_o prose_n as_o in_o verse_n but_o because_o both_o of_o they_o be_v unanswerable_a you_o under_o colour_n that_o the_o one_o be_v in_o verse_n reject_v s._n prosper_n as_o fabulous_a in_o both_o for_o the_o liberty_n which_o poet_n assume_v unto_o they_o be_v to_o report_v fable_n instead_o of_o truth_n this_o be_v the_o reverence_n you_o bear_v to_o that_o holy_a and_o renown_a father_n and_o such_o the_o solution_n wherewith_o you_o shift_v off_o the_o testimony_n of_o antiquity_n and_o yet_o bear_v your_o reader_n in_o hand_n that_o you_o believe_v as_o they_o believe_v 4._o the_o b._n of_o patara_n in_o licia_n 22._o licia_n liberat._v in_o breu._n c._n 22._o upon_o the_o banishment_n of_o pope_n siluerius_n represent_v to_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o judgement_n of_o god_n upon_o the_o expulsion_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o so_o great_a a_o seat_n say_v there_o be_v many_o king_n in_o the_o world_n but_o not_o one_o of_o they_o as_o the_o pope_n who_o be_v head_n over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n you_o answer_v 156._o answer_v pag._n 156._o liberatus_n who_o report_v this_o history_n be_v a_o author_n deceive_v by_o heretic_n &_o believe_v not_o himself_o what_o he_o report_v for_o the_o pope_n give_v we_o any_o one_o author_n that_o except_v against_o this_o relation_n of_o liberatus_n before_o yourself_o or_o that_o say_v he_o himself_o belive_v not_o what_o he_o report_v for_o the_o pope_n if_o it_o shall_v be_v lawful_a for_o you_o to_o reject_v testimony_n of_o antiquity_n upon_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o because_o they_o be_v against_o yourself_o what_o authority_n may_v not_o with_o such_o answer_n be_v elude_v you_o know_v this_o not_o to_o satisfy_v and_o therefore_o have_v invent_v another_o that_o this_o greek_a author_n must_v be_v take_v in_o the_o greek_a sense_n of_o primacy_n of_o order_n this_o satisfi_v as_o little_a as_o the_o former_a for_o the_o b._n of_o patara_n compare_v the_o spiritual_a authority_n of_o the_o pope_n with_o the_o temporal_a of_o king_n protest_v that_o no_o king_n have_v temporal_a power_n over_o all_o the_o kingdom_n of_o the_o earth_n as_o the_o pope_n have_v spiritual_a over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o wholeworld_n again_o that_o the_o pope_n primacy_n in_o the_o greek_a sense_n be_v not_o primacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o of_o order_n only_o be_v say_v gratis_o and_o untrue_o the_o greek_a father_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n speak_v in_o the_o greek_a sense_n &_o yet_o they_o acknowledge_v leon._n acknowledge_v in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n the_o pope_n to_o be_v their_o head_n and_o to_o rule_v over_o they_o at_o the_o head_n do_v over_o the_o member_n theodoret_n speak_v in_o the_o greek_a sense_n when_o he_o say_v renat_n say_v in_o ep._n ââ_o renat_n the_o see_v of_o rome_n have_v the_o stern_a of_o government_n over_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o world_n theodosius_n speak_v in_o the_o greek_a sense_n 24._o sense_n const._n â_o novel_a the_o 24._o when_o he_o call_v the_o pope_n rector_n of_o the_o universality_n of_o church_n this_o therefore_o be_v the_o greek_a sense_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n the_o b._n of_o patara_n speak_v to_o justinian_n 5._o s._n epiphanius_n 58._o epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 58._o report_v that_o vrsacius_n &_o valens_n bishop_n &_o chief_a stickler_n of_o the_o arian_n touch_v with_o remorse_n for_o their_o treachery_n against_o athanasius_n go_v up_o to_o rome_n and_o present_v libel_n of_o penance_n to_o julius_n pope_n crave_v pardon_n for_o their_o offence_n and_o promise_v to_o stand_v to_o his_o judgement_n which_o show_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v he_o to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o judge_n of_o bishop_n this_o testimony_n though_o set_v down_o in_o your_o latin_a margin_n curtal_v 254._o curtal_v pag._n 254._o yet_o in_o your_o english_a you_o make_v no_o mention_n of_o it_o but_o pretend_v to_o answer_n by_o a_o similitude_n tell_v we_o a_o tale_n of_o a_o tub_n of_o a._n r._n in_o the_o county_n of_o suffolk_n crave_v pardon_n of_o the_o sheriff_n of_o middelsex_n for_o a_o notorious_a offence_n do_v unto_o he_o but_o to_o omit_v that_o hereby_o the_o english_a reader_n can_v have_v no_o notice_n at_o all_o of_o the_o force_n of_o this_o testimony_n your_o answer_n be_v nether_a similitude_n nor_o solution_n but_o petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la a_o false_a supposition_n that_o vrsacius_n and_o valens_n ask_v pardon_n of_o julius_n for_o a_o notorious_a offence_n do_v unto_o he_o their_o offence_n be_v not_o against_o julius_n but_o against_o athanasius_n and_o yet_o of_o this_o offence_n they_o ask_v pardon_n of_o julius_n because_o they_o know_v that_o to_o he_o as_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n it_o belong_v to_o remedy_v the_o disorder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o as_o he_o have_v power_n to_o punish_v they_o for_o their_o offence_n so_o he_o have_v also_o to_o pardon_v they_o upon_o their_o submission_n and_o promise_v of_o amendment_n which_o to_o that_o end_n they_o make_v 6._o no_o less_o impertinent_a be_v the_o other_o flim-flam_n which_o you_o add_v 254._o add_v pag._n 254._o as_o a_o answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o dionysius_n alexandrinus_n of_o two_o gentleman_n the_o one_o be_v a_o justice_n of_o peace_n agree_v to_o have_v their_o difference_n to_o be_v order_v by_o another_o justice_n of_o peace_n for_o when_o dionysius_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n be_v fall_v into_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n seleuc_n heresy_n athanas_n de_fw-mi send_v dion_n et_fw-fr de_fw-fr sin_n arim_n &_o seleuc_n the_o catholic_n of_o alexandria_n go_v up_o to_o rome_n to_o accuse_v he_o before_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n admonish_v he_o to_o clear_v himself_o and_o he_o obey_v present_o send_v up_o a_o book_n of_o defence_n and_o apology_n which_o show_v that_o both_o the_o people_n &_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o cause_n of_o bishop_n and_o of_o faith_n be_v to_o be_v try_v at_o the_o pope_n tribunal_n and_o that_o the_o pope_n know_v himself_o to_o have_v
and_o practise_v the_o same_o authority_n 7._o not_o unlike_a to_o these_o be_v the_o answer_v you_o give_v to_o s._n athanasius_n 254._o athanasius_n pag._n 254._o s._n chrysostome_n 255._o chrysostome_n pag._n 255._o and_o theodoret_n who_o be_v injust_o depose_v from_o their_o bishopricke_n appeal_v to_o to_o julius_n innocentius_n and_o leo_n pope_n with_o manifest_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o authority_n over_o all_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o the_o world_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v sect_n ii_o other_o of_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o ancient_a father_n examine_v some_o eastern_a bishop_n who_o with_o great_a scandal_n of_o the_o church_n and_o perturbation_n of_o the_o people_n refuse_v to_o insert_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n into_o the_o dyptike_n or_o table_n of_o public_a record_n be_v for_o that_o cause_n excommunicate_v by_o innocentius_n with_o command_n that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o peace_n and_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n until_o they_o restore_v he_o this_o though_o it_o be_v a_o argument_n of_o the_o supreme_a power_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n you_o wrest_v it_o to_o a_o contrary_a sense_n among_o they_o that_o refuse_v to_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v alexander_z patriarch_n of_o antioch_n and_o acacius_n bishop_n of_o beroë_n but_o these_o two_o to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v admit_v into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n restore_v his_o name_n and_o perform_v what_o else_o innocentius_n in_o join_v they_o 11._o they_o spond_n anno_o 408._o n._n 11._o of_o these_o two_o you_o be_v silent_a they_o be_v not_o for_o your_o purpose_n but_o because_o some_o other_o stand_v out_o for_o a_o time_n you_o lay_v hold_v on_o they_o who_o upon_o due_a examination_n will_v prove_v as_o little_a to_o your_o purpose_n as_o the_o two_o you_o conceal_v your_o first_o example_n 258.259_o example_n pag._n 258.259_o be_v of_o theophilus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o stand_v out_o until_o the_o end_n of_o his_o life_n but_o god_n that_o will_v not_o have_v a_o man_n so_o well_o deserve_v of_o his_o church_n to_o die_v in_o the_o state_n of_o excommunication_n ordain_v by_o his_o providence_n that_o the_o soul_n of_o theophilus_n can_v not_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o body_n until_o a_o image_n of_o s._n chrysostome_n be_v bring_v unto_o he_o he_o adore_v it_o do_v penance_n for_o his_o former_a error_n and_o by_o that_o mean_v restore_v himself_o to_o the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n this_o his_o recantation_n be_v report_v by_o isidorus_n diaconus_fw-la and_o out_o of_o he_o by_o s._n john_n damascen_n fin_n damascen_n l._n 3._o the_o imag_n prope_fw-la fin_n wherefore_o your_o denial_n of_o it_o be_v a_o falsity_n frame_v without_o ground_n by_o yourself_o out_o a_o desire_n that_o theophilus_n shall_v have_v die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o you_o live_v your_o second_o example_n 257._o example_n pag._n 257._o be_v of_o atticus_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n who_o be_v excommunicate_v for_o the_o same_o cause_n persist_v sometime_o in_o his_o error_n but_o at_o length_n move_v by_o the_o example_n of_o theophilus_n and_o maximianus_n a_o bishop_n of_o macedonia_n make_v intercession_n for_o he_o 408._o he_o baron_fw-fr anno_o 408._o innocentius_n yield_v to_o absolve_v he_o provide_v that_o he_o will_v himself_o ask_v absolution_n and_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n hereupon_o atticus_n witness_n theodoret_n 34._o theodoret_n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 34._o send_v many_o embassage_n to_o rome_n to_o obtain_v the_o communion_n of_o innocentius_n but_o can_v never_o obtain_v it_o until_o partly_o by_o persuasion_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o partly_o fear_v a_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n he_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n and_o write_v letter_n to_o cyrill_v b._n of_o alexandria_n persuade_v he_o to_o do_v the_o like_a wherefore_o baronius_n true_o say_v 425._o say_v anno_fw-la 425._o that_o atticus_n restore_v chrysostome_n by_o the_o command_n and_o compulsion_n of_o innocentius_n and_o not_o by_o the_o distraction_n and_o tumultuosnesse_n of_o the_o people_n only_o as_o you_o comment_n for_o if_o he_o fear_v the_o tumult_n of_o the_o people_n it_o be_v in_o regard_n the_o people_n be_v incense_v against_o he_o for_o not_o restore_v chrysostome_n as_o innocentius_n have_v command_v and_o if_o as_o you_o object_n 258._o object_n pag._n 258._o he_o call_v two_o bishop_n that_o have_v die_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n schismatic_n he_o speak_v in_o passion_n see_v himself_o excommunicate_v by_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n and_o know_v as_o you_o also_o do_v that_o he_o speak_v untrue_o for_o if_o it_o be_v think_v schism_n to_o be_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o you_o say_v he_o do_v why_o do_v he_o so_o earnest_o desire_v and_o send_v so_o many_o embassage_n to_o be_v admit_v into_o her_o communion_n be_v be_v to_o make_v himself_o a_o schismatic_a nay_o be_v it_o not_o to_o free_v himself_o from_o schism_n why_o do_v not_o you_o imitate_v he_o your_o three_o example_n 259.260.261_o example_n pag._n 259.260.261_o be_v of_o cyrill_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n who_o if_o for_o a_o time_n he_o obey_v not_o innocentius_n in_o restore_v the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n it_o be_v because_o he_o judge_v the_o command_n of_o innocentius_n to_o be_v against_o the_o canon_n witness_v his_o own_o word_n allege_v by_o yourself_o fin_n yourself_o pag._n 259._o fin_n but_o his_o judgement_n be_v erroneous_a and_o because_o what_o he_o do_v be_v out_o of_o a_o pious_a zeal_n as_o he_o conceive_v god_n reduce_v he_o by_o a_o miraculous_a vision_n wherein_o he_o see_v himself_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n by_o chrysostome_n and_o a_o troop_n of_o saint_n that_o assist_v he_o therein_o but_o that_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n do_v make_v intercession_n for_o he_o as_o one_o that_o have_v defend_v her_o honour_n against_o nestorius_n cyrill_fw-mi move_v with_o this_o vision_n condemn_v his_o own_o judgement_n concern_v chrysostome_n and_o call_v a_o provincial_a synod_n restore_v his_o name_n to_o the_o sacred_a record_n as_o the_o other_o patriarch_n have_v do_v to_o this_o you_o make_v two_o reply_n first_o 261._o first_o pag._n 261._o you_o call_v this_o a_o tale_n of_o nicephorus_n a_o fabulous_a author_n that_o live_v 800._o year_n after_o cyrills_n death_n but_o you_o wrong_v nicephorus_n for_o he_o report_v it_o out_o of_o nicetas_n that_o live_v almost_o 500_o year_n near_o cyril'_v time_n than_o himself_o and_o out_o of_o other_o ancient_a historian_n hoc_fw-la say_v he_o 28._o he_o l._n 14._o c._n 28._o in_o arcana_fw-la nicetae_n philosophi_fw-la historia_fw-la &_o apud_fw-la alios_fw-la inveni_fw-la 2._o you_o reply_v 261._o reply_v pag._n 261._o that_o cyril'_v restore_v chrysostome_n can_v any_o whit_n serve_v our_o turn_n because_o he_o do_v not_o simple_o by_o submission_n to_o the_o pope_n decree_n but_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o vision_n in_o a_o dream_n sure_o you_o seem_v to_o have_v be_v in_o a_o dream_n when_o you_o devise_v this_o answer_n for_o there_o can_v be_v a_o great_a argument_n of_o the_o pope_n authority_n then_o that_o god_n by_o a_o miraculous_a vision_n shall_v notify_v to_o cyril_n that_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o resistance_n make_v to_o the_o decree_n of_o innocentius_n he_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n and_o in_o how_o great_a veneration_n do_v cyrill_n hold_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n he_o i_o say_v that_o be_v great_o exasperate_v against_o other_o bishop_n for_o the_o name_n of_o chrysostome_n yet_o never_o let_v slip_n from_o his_o mouth_n any_o the_o least_o irreverent_a word_n against_o innocentius_n and_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o he_o firm_o believe_v the_o supreme_a authority_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v when_o he_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n as_o vicar_n to_o celestine_n pope_n 1._o pope_n see_v above_o chap._n 18._o sect_n 1._o without_o who_o order_n as_o he_o dare_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o nestorius_n so_o he_o execute_v on_o his_o person_n punctual_o what_o celestine_n command_v and_o final_o his_o belief_n be_v that_o salvation_n can_v be_v have_v out_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n 4._o church_n see_v above_o chap._n 1._o sect_n 4._o sect_n iii_o doctor_n mortons_n answer_n to_o the_o testimony_n of_o acacius_n examine_v a_o cacius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v to_o simplicius_n pope_n profess_v that_o the_o care_n of_o all_o church_n belong_v to_o he_o you_o answer_v 162._o answer_v pag._n 161._o fin_n 162._o the_o universal_a care_n of_o all_o church_n be_v apply_v to_o s._n paul_n in_o the_o day_n of_o peter_n and_o to_o other_o bishop_n in_o who_o there_o be_v no_o monarchical_a popedom_n this_o satisfi_v not_o for_o the_o universal_a care_n of_o all_o church_n may_v be_v of_o
1._o &_o author_n vitæ_fw-la eius_fw-la apud_fw-la sur._n 5._o junij_fw-la return_v into_o germany_n &_o gregory_n send_v he_o the_o pal_z confer_v on_o he_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o archbishop_n bonifac_o archbishop_n greg._n 3._o ep_v 2._o add_v bonifac_o and_o before_o he_o s_n gregory_n the_o great_a 8._o great_a l._n 4._o ep._n 8._o write_v to_o john_n bishop_n of_o the_o first_o justinianea_n the_o relation_n of_o our_o brethren_n and_o fellow-bishop_n of_o illyria_n have_v declare_v unto_o we_o that_o thou_o be_v call_v to_o the_o episcopal_a dignity_n by_o the_o agree_a consent_n of_o dall_a the_o council_n and_o by_o the_o will_n of_o the_o most_o excellent_a prince_n mauritius_n the_o emperor_n whereunto_o we_o also_o give_v our_o consent_n etc._n etc._n and_o send_v thou_o the_o pall_n according_a to_o the_o custom_n and_o decree_n by_o a_o reiterated_a innovation_n that_o thou_o exercise_v the_o vicarship_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o before_o he_o celestine_n pope_n send_v the_o pal_z to_o cyrill_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n 34._o alexandria_n balsam_n in_o nomocan_n phot._n tit_n 3._o c._n 1._o niceph._n l._n 14._o c._n 34._o make_v he_o his_o vicar_n with_o full_a power_n to_o preside_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n and_o judge_v the_o cause_n of_o nestorius_n and_o again_o before_o he_o marcus_z pope_n grant_v the_o pal_z to_o the_o b._n of_o ostia_n marco_n ostia_n vit._n rom._n pontif._n in_o marco_n confirm_v to_o he_o and_o his_o successor_n the_o authority_n of_o consecrate_v the_o b._n of_o rome_n all_o this_o show_v that_o the_o pal_z which_o the_o pope_n send_v to_o archbishop_n be_v not_o only_o a_o expression_n of_o his_o assent_n to_o their_o election_n and_o institution_n but_o a_o grant_n of_o most_o ample_a power_n and_o authority_n which_o they_o require_v from_o he_o by_o ask_v the_o pal_z and_o receive_v from_o he_o together_o with_o the_o pal._n and_o moreover_o that_o their_o letter_n to_o he_o be_v not_o only_o to_o profess_v their_o agreement_n in_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o also_o to_o acknowledge_v their_o subjection_n and_o to_o promise_v obedience_n to_o he_o which_o promise_n be_v likewise_o make_v by_o all_o bishop_n at_o their_o return_n from_o schism_n to_o the_o catholic_a church_n as_o appear_v by_o the_o form_n of_o oath_n which_o hormisdas_n pope_n 517._o pope_n apud_fw-la baron_n anno_o 517._o s._n gregory_n 30._o gregory_n l._n 10._o ep._n 30._o and_o the_o eight_o general_a council_n 200._o council_n bin._n to_o 3._o pag._n 923._o canus_n l._n 6._o c._n 6._o pag._n 200._o prescribe_v to_o be_v take_v by_o they_o as_o also_o by_o the_o profession_n which_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n hormisd_v constantinople_n ep._n add_v hormisd_v make_v to_o hormisdas_n pope_n and_o final_o the_o ancient_a custom_n which_o sophronius_n patriarch_n of_o jerusalem_n pap._n jerusalem_n ep._n ad_fw-la honor._n pap._n call_v a_o apostolical_a tradition_n be_v that_o when_o bishop_n be_v first_o institute_v they_o shall_v send_v a_o profession_n of_o their_o faith_n to_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n which_o he_o approve_v do_v thereby_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o bishoprike_n this_o custom_n say_v sophronius_n we_o follow_v write_v unto_o you_o who_o have_v the_o knowledge_n of_o divine_a thing_n to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v give_v testimony_n of_o what_o faith_n we_o hold_v we_o write_v i_o say_v to_o you_o who_o have_v knowledge_n not_o only_o to_o discern_v true_a doctrine_n from_o false_a but_o be_v able_a to_o supply_v whatsoever_o be_v want_v sect_n ii_o a_o shift_n of_o doctor_n morton_n reject_v your_o second_o answer_n be_v 288._o be_v pag._n 288._o that_o as_o the_o send_n of_o the_o pall_n to_o archbishop_n be_v only_o a_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n assent_n to_o their_o institution_n so_o his_o depose_n of_o other_o bishop_n without_o the_o roman_a diece_n be_v but_o a_o expression_n to_o other_o that_o he_o think_v they_o just_o depose_v &_o that_o his_o power_n in_o restitution_n of_o other_o that_o have_v be_v depose_v be_v the_o like_a manifestation_n of_o his_o consent_n to_o have_v such_o and_o such_o restore_v even_o as_o other_o patriarch_n often_o do_v these_o be_v word_n but_o not_o a_o answer_n for_o any_o inferior_a as_o a_o suffragan_n bishop_n or_o a_o lay_v man_n may_v express_v his_o opinion_n or_o his_o assent_n that_o his_o metropolitan_a be_v to_o be_v depose_v or_o if_o he_o be_v already_o depose_v that_o he_o be_v just_o depose_v and_o yet_o nether_a depose_v he_o nor_o any_o way_n concur_v to_o his_o deposition_n but_o leave_v he_o in_o the_o state_n he_o find_v he_o for_o deposition_n whether_o it_o be_v of_o a_o ecclesiastical_a prelate_n or_o of_o a_o temporal_a officer_n be_v iuridicall_a sentence_n whereby_o a_o superior_a actual_o exercise_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o judge_n and_o real_o deprive_v his_o inferior_a of_o a_o dignity_n whereof_o he_o be_v possess_v and_o therefore_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o none_o but_o by_o he_o that_o have_v power_n of_o a_o judge_n to_o condemn_v his_o inferior_a and_o so_o likewise_o the_o restitution_n of_o a_o bishop_n to_o his_o seat_n be_v a_o operative_a act_n of_o power_n whereby_o the_o sentence_n of_o deposition_n pronounce_v against_o he_o be_v reverse_a and_o annul_v which_o therefore_o can_v be_v perform_v by_o none_o but_o by_o one_o that_o be_v superior_a in_o power_n as_o well_o to_o the_o bishop_n depose_v as_o to_o the_o superior_a that_o depose_v he_o in_o this_o manner_n the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n request_v the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo_n precedent_n of_o the_o council_n 3._o council_n act._n 3._o to_o pronounce_v sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o dioscorus_n patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n which_o they_o according_o perform_v depose_v he_o in_o leo_n name_n from_o his_o episcopal_a dignity_n and_o from_o all_o sacerdotal_a function_n and_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n be_v full_a of_o example_n of_o the_o same_o nature_n sect_n iii_o the_o popas_n power_n of_o institute_v and_o confirm_v bishop_n prove_v by_o example_n your_o three_o answer_n be_v 288._o be_v pag._n 288._o you_o produce_v no_o one_o example_n wherein_o it_o can_v appear_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v either_o institute_n confirm_v depose_v or_o restore_v any_o bishop_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n alone_o without_o the_o help_n of_o a_o council_n this_o answer_n be_v a_o shift_n vain_a as_o the_o former_a be_v and_o withal_o a_o notorious_a untruth_n a_o shift_n for_o when_o his_o majesty_n make_v a_o law_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o his_o parliament_n or_o the_o lord_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n a_o ecclesiastical_a decree_n with_o a_o council_n of_o his_o suffragans_fw-la be_v it_o not_o sophistry_n to_o argue_v from_o thence_o that_o his_o majesty_n be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n in_o his_o dominion_n or_o that_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n have_v not_o jurisdiction_n over_o his_o suffragans_fw-la no_o less_o than_o it_o be_v to_o argue_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o jurisdiction_n over_o other_o bishop_n because_o he_o depose_v or_o restore_v they_o not_o without_o a_o council_n for_o as_o it_o be_v not_o necessaty_n that_o a_o king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n or_o a_o archbishop_n in_o his_o diocese_n exercise_v all_o act_n of_o jurisdiction_n alone_o without_o the_o advice_n or_o help_v of_o their_o subject_n so_o neither_o be_v it_o that_o the_o pope_n institute_v depose_v or_o restore_v bishop_n alone_z without_o the_o advice_n and_o help_v of_o a_o council_n and_o so_o much_o the_o more_o because_o when_o counsel_n have_v proceed_v to_o the_o deposition_n of_o bishop_n they_o have_v acknowledge_v the_o last_o desinitue_a sentence_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o pope_n so_o do_v the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n profess_v themselves_o to_o depose_v nestorius_n by_o the_o command_n of_o pope_n celestine_n 1._o celestine_n see_v above_o chap._n 18._o sect_n 1._o and_o in_o reserve_v to_o he_o the_o last_o sentence_n against_o john_n patriarch_n of_o antioch_n 2._o antioch_n see_v ibid._n sect_n 2._o and_o when_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v to_o depose_v dioscorus_n they_o beseech_v the_o pope_n legate_n as_o represent_v his_o person_n that_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o judge_n of_o all_o bishop_n to_o pronounce_v the_o sentence_n of_o condemnation_n against_o he_o which_o the_o legate_n perform_v 2._o perform_v see_v above_o chap._n 19_o sect_n 2._o and_o when_o they_o admit_v theodoret_n that_o have_v be_v depose_v in_o the_o second_o council_n of_o ephesus_n to_o enter_v and_o take_v his_o place_n among_o the_o bishop_n they_o do_v it_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o the_o most_o holy_a archbishop_n lee_n have_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o bishopric_n ibid._n bishopric_n see_v above_o ibid._n and_o as_o this_o your_o three_o answer_n be_v a_o shift_n so_o it_o be_v a_o untruth_n
thing_n uncertain_a many_o think_v it_o to_o be_v of_o damasus_n and_o his_o you_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v but_o the_o contrary_n be_v manifest_a for_o the_o epistle_n speak_v of_o bonosus_n a_o archheretic_n who_o have_v be_v condemn_v by_o judge_n appoint_v in_o they_o council_n of_o capua_n which_o be_v not_o hold_v in_o time_n of_o damasus_n but_o of_o siricius_n successor_n to_o damasus_n it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a that_o the_o request_n of_o bovosus_fw-la which_o you_o object_v out_o of_o this_o epistle_n to_o have_v his_o cause_n hear_v again_o can_v not_o be_v to_o damasus_n his_o first_o condemnation_n be_v not_o until_o after_o damasus_n his_o death_n when_o you_o can_v show_v this_o epistle_n to_o be_v of_o damasus_n you_o shall_v receive_v a_o answer_n which_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o give_v you_o now_o if_o i_o list_v to_o spend_v time_n in_o refute_v your_o tedious_a discourse_n of_o rack_a the_o verb_n competit_fw-la to_o a_o strict_a sense_n and_o which_o not_o one_o but_o many_o way_n be_v deficient_a as_o all_o your_o argument_n for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v your_o addition_n l._n addition_n pag._n 318._o mark_fw-mi l._n that_o if_o the_o epistle_n be_v not_o of_o damasus_n it_o be_v certain_o of_o some_o pope_n and_o that_o all_o hold_v it_o so_o be_v affirm_v by_o you_o gratis_o and_o as_o easy_o deny_v by_o i_o chap._n xl._n whether_o the_o eastern_a church_n be_v at_o this_o day_n accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n sect_n i._o the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n the_o nine_o first_o section_n of_o your_o fourtenth_fw-mi chapter_n you_o spend_v in_o prove_v that_o the_o grecian_n egyptian_n aethiopian_n assyrian_n armenian_n russian_n melchites_n and_o other_o remote_a nation_n at_o this_o day_n dissent_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o be_v accordant_a in_o communion_n with_o protestant_n the_o foundation_n of_o your_o whole_a discourse_n you_o lay_v in_o these_o word_n 330._o word_n pag._n 330._o whatsoever_o christian_n have_v not_o ruinate_v any_o fundamental_a article_n of_o save_v faith_n set_v down_o in_o our_o ancient_a creed_n and_o be_v unite_v unto_o the_o true_a catholic_a head_n christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n by_o a_o live_a faith_n all_o protestant_n esteem_v they_o as_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o notwithstanding_o diverse_a their_o more_o tolerable_a error_n and_o superstition_n to_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n albeit_o no_o way_n subject_a or_o subordinate_a to_o the_o roman_a church_n these_o be_v your_o word_n which_o contain_v in_o themselves_o open_a implication_n namely_o that_o one_o may_v be_v unite_v to_o the_o true_a catholic_a head_n christ_n jesus_n by_o a_o live_a faith_n and_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o yet_o be_v out_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n which_o to_o be_v none_o else_o but_o the_o roman_a and_o that_o out_o of_o she_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n have_v be_v already_o prove_v 2.3.4_o prove_v chap._n 1._o sect_n 2.3.4_o from_o this_o false_a principle_n you_o deduce_v that_o the_o grecian_n asian_o egyptian_n assyrian_n aethiopian_n african_n melchites_n russian_n and_o armenian_n notwithstanding_o their_o separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v at_o this_o day_n true_o profess_v christian_n church_n 379._o church_n pag._n 379._o part_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n init_fw-la church_n pag._n 406._o fin_n 407._o init_fw-la faithful_a christian_n profess_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n 417._o father_n pag._n 417._o &_o in_o state_n of_o salvation_n and_o rail_v bitter_o at_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o deny_v the_o same_o but_o how_o great_a ignorance_n and_o impiety_n you_o show_v and_o how_o many_o most_o shameful_a untruth_n you_o utter_v in_o the_o prosecution_n of_o this_o argument_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o declare_v some_o of_o they_o i_o shall_v present_v to_o the_o reader_n view_v and_o to_o proceed_v methodical_o i_o will_v reduce_v what_o i_o be_o to_o say_v to_o two_o head_n 1._o i_o will_v prove_v that_o as_o the_o christian_n of_o these_o remote_a nation_n ancient_o be_v so_o many_o of_o they_o at_o this_o day_n be_v accordant_a in_o belief_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n &_o yield_v obedience_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n on_o earth_n and_o as_o to_o the_o supreme_a pastor_n and_o governor_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 2._o that_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o these_o nation_n which_o be_v not_o roman_a catholic_n be_v not_o of_o one_o belief_n or_o communion_n with_o protestant_n but_o whole_o dissent_v from_o they_o holding_z most_o blasphemous_a and_o damnable_a heresy_n acknowledge_v for_o such_o by_o protestant_n themselves_n from_o whence_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o you_o affirm_v they_o to_o be_v faithful_a christian_n of_o the_o same_o belief_n with_o the_o ancient_a father_n charge_v the_o ancient_a father_n with_o blasphemous_a heresy_n and_o make_v they_o incapable_a of_o salvation_n sect_n ii_o whether_o the_o grecian_n of_o the_o primitive_a and_o successive_a time_n agree_v in_o faith_n and_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o particular_o at_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n that_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o afterward_o in_o that_o of_o chalcedon_n endeavour_v to_o give_v to_o their_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n the_o second_o place_n of_o dignity_n in_o the_o church_n next_o after_o the_o pope_n and_o before_o the_o other_o patriarch_n we_o acknowledge_v but_o that_o they_o seek_v thereby_o to_o exempt_v themselves_o from_o their_o obedience_n and_o subjection_n to_o the_o pope_n have_v be_v effectual_o disprove_v 4._o disprove_v chap._n 17._o sect_n 5._o chap._n 19_o sect_n 4._o i_o speak_v not_o this_o to_o deny_v that_o ancient_o there_o be_v of_o the_o grecian_n many_o heretic_n which_o oppose_v the_o roman_a church_n and_o by_o her_o authority_n be_v condemn_v and_o that_o eight_o patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n in_o particular_a as_o also_o eutyches_n a_o archheretic_n of_o the_o same_o city_n be_v anathematise_v and_o east_n out_o of_o the_o church_n for_o heresy_n and_o whereas_o the_o western_a church_n by_o the_o example_n and_o diligence_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v preserve_v from_o heresy_n the_o church_n of_o the_o east_n new_a heresy_n daily_o spring_v up_o be_v so_o pitiful_o tear_v and_o ten_o in_o piece_n that_o s._n hierome_n complain_v thereof_o to_o pope_n damasus_n say_v 57_o say_v ep._n 57_o because_o the_o east_n strike_v against_o itself_o by_o the_o ancient_a fury_n of_o the_o people_n tear_n in_o little_a morsel_n the_o undevided_a coat_n of_o our_o lord_n weave_v on_o high_a and_o that_o the_o fox_n destroy_v the_o vine_n of_o christ_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o it_o be_v difficult_a among_o the_o dry_a pit_n that_o have_v no_o water_n to_o discern_v where_o the_o seal_a fountain_n and_o the_o enclose_a garden_n be_v i_o have_v therefore_o think_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o consult_v with_o the_o chair_n of_o peter_n and_o the_o faith_n praise_v by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o apostle_n this_o be_v the_o miserable_a state_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n in_o those_o day_n be_v govern_v sometime_o by_o catholic_a bishop_n that_o acknowledge_v subjection_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o sometime_o by_o heretic_n that_o oppose_v her_o authority_n until_o at_o length_n photius_n have_v injust_o drive_v ignatius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n from_o his_o see_n and_o intrude_v himself_o into_o his_o place_n and_o be_v for_o that_o cause_n often_o excommunicate_v by_o nicolas_n the_o first_o and_o john_n the_o eight_o pope_n of_o rome_n to_o maintain_v his_o injust_a title_n withdraw_v himself_o from_o their_o obedience_n and_o to_o the_o end_n he_o may_v have_v some_o colour_n to_o persevere_v in_o that_o separation_n cavilled_a at_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o holy_a ghost_n proceed_v from_o the_o father_n and_o the_o son_n and_o write_v against_o it_o and_o the_o greek_n follow_v he_o in_o this_o error_n separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o roman_a man_n church_n yet_o not_o so_o but_o that_o they_o have_v often_o eleven_o time_n say_v s._n antoninus_n 23._o antoninus_n hist._n par_fw-fr 2._o tit_n 22._o c._n 23._o acknowledge_v their_o error_n and_o reconcile_v themselves_o to_o she_o and_o especial_o thrice_o in_o most_o solemn_a manner_n in_o three_o several_a counsel_n of_o barium_n in_o apulia_n of_o lion_n in_o france_n and_o of_o florence_n in_o tuscany_n but_o still_o return_v to_o their_o error_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o disobedience_n to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o dog_n to_o their_o vomit_n almighty_a god_n punish_v they_o with_o a_o heavy_a hand_n deliver_v they_o up_o to_o a_o miserable_a captivity_n &_o servitude_n under_o the_o turk_n and_o that_o they_o may_v know_v the_o
pope_n be_v the_o schismatic_n and_o not_o the_o council_n but_o i_o wonder_v not_o that_o you_o take_v part_n with_o schismatic_o belike_o you_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o some_o obstinate_a puritan_n in_o parliament_n stand_v out_o against_o his_o majesty_n he_o and_o not_o they_o be_v the_o rebel_n for_o the_o case_n be_v alike_o save_v only_o that_o this_o be_v a_o temporal_a cause_n and_o that_o a_o spiritual_a but_o you_o demand_v 360._o demand_v pag._n 360._o with_o nilus_n and_o erasmus_n to_o what_o end_n general_a counsel_n shall_v be_v call_v with_o so_o much_o cost_n trouble_n and_o labour_n if_o the_o pope_n have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n i_o answer_v to_o the_o same_o end_n that_o s._n peter_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o rome_n notwithstanding_o he_o have_v infallibility_n of_o judgement_n call_v a_o council_n at_o antioch_n 15.6.7_o antioch_n act._n 15.6.7_o if_o you_o desire_v more_o reason_n you_o have_v they_o in_o bellarmine_n 7._o bellarmine_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr pont._n c._n 7._o who_o have_v answer_v this_o argument_n but_o you_o be_v wise_a enough_o to_o take_v no_o notice_n thereof_o sect_n ix_o doctor_n mortons_n instance_n of_o france_n and_o england_n to_o prove_v the_o no-necessity_n of_o union_n with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n there_o have_v be_v publish_v by_o some_o of_o your_o novellist_n a_o pamphlet_n entitle_v fasciculus_fw-la rerum_fw-la expetendarum_fw-la &_o fugiendarum_fw-la stuff_v with_o so_o many_o lie_v that_o the_o author_n be_v ashamed_a to_o have_v his_o name_n know_v it_o be_v prohibit_v prohib_fw-la prohibit_v indic_n libro_fw-la prohib_fw-la and_o therefore_o what_o you_o report_v out_o of_o it_o not_o to_o be_v regard_v but_o your_o addition_n 361._o addition_n pag._n 361._o that_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n be_v not_o admit_v within_o the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n and_o that_o therefore_o the_o french_a be_v yet_o at_o liberty_n to_o believe_v as_o much_o thereof_o as_o they_o listen_v be_v a_o famous_a untruth_n for_o although_o that_o kingdom_n have_v not_o admit_v general_o all_o the_o decree_n make_v by_o that_o council_n for_o the_o reformation_n of_o ecclesiastical_a discipline_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o as_o the_o catholic_n of_o the_o world_n have_v so_o have_v that_o most_o christian_a kingdom_n with_o they_o admit_v and_o embrace_v all_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n and_o that_o the_o most_o christian_n king_n with_o all_o his_o catholic_a subject_n believe_v they_o no_o less_o steadfast_o than_o the_o decree_n of_o faith_n make_v in_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n which_o you_o admit_v not_o unlike_a to_o this_o be_v your_o addition_n 361._o addition_n pag._n 361._o fin_n 361._o out_o of_o b._n gardiner_n oration_n of_o true_a obedience_n that_o in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n in_o england_n be_v agree_v upon_o this_o point_n with_o most_o steadfast_a consent_n learned_a and_o unlearned_a both_o man_n and_o woman_n that_o no_o manner_n of_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n for_o albeit_o some_o person_n infect_v with_o lutheranisme_n &_o some_o flatterer_n for_o their_o own_o end_n soothe_a king_n henry_n in_o his_o opposition_n to_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n yet_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o face_n of_o the_o kingdom_n be_v then_o general_o catholic_a as_o for_o the_o space_n of_o almost_o 1000_o year_n before_o it_o have_v be_v and_o who_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n b._n fisher_n &_o sir_n thomas_n more_o write_v most_o learned_a book_n which_o be_v yet_o and_o will_v ever_o be_v most_o high_o esteem_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o that_o what_o they_o write_v with_o their_o pen_n they_o seal_v with_o their_o blood_n and_o who_o know_v not_o that_o cardinal_n pole_n a_o man_n of_o so_o great_a worth_n that_o he_o want_v but_o two_o voice_n for_o the_o popedom_n not_o only_o write_v most_o learned_o in_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o suffer_v and_o his_o friend_n for_o his_o sake_n great_a vexation_n and_o persecution_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o king_n henry_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n and_o that_o many_o person_n of_o worth_n suffer_v imprisonment_n and_o death_n for_o the_o same_o cause_n among_o which_o be_v all_o the_o charterhouse_n monk_n of_o london_n with_o their_o prior_n it_o be_v therefore_o a_o famous_a untruth_n to_o say_v it_o be_v then_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o no_o person_n breed_v or_o bring_v up_o in_o england_n have_v aught_o to_o do_v with_o rome_n moreover_o you_o know_v this_o oration_n of_o b._n gardiner_n to_o be_v prohibit_v by_o the_o church_n prohib_o church_n in_o indic_n lib._n prohib_o and_o that_o he_o ashamed_a of_o it_o retract_v it_o which_o yet_o you_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o object_v chap._n xliv_o whether_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n have_v any_o just_a cause_n to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n we_o be_v come_v to_o the_o last_o chapter_n of_o your_o grand_a imposture_n in_o which_o to_o free_v yourself_o from_o the_o note_n of_o schism_n &_o heresy_n you_o brand_v the_o roman_a church_n with_o both_o &_o labour_n to_o prove_v that_o luther_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o separate_v himself_o from_o her_o communion_n and_o that_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o same_o separation_n be_v more_o justifiable_a than_o luther_n be_v in_o his_o departure_n from_o she_o and_o may_v more_o just_o plead_v soul_n salvation_n than_o any_o of_o they_o that_o remain_v in_o union_n with_o she_o your_o chapter_n you_o divide_v into_o four_o part_n and_o these_o part_n into_o thesis_n which_o i_o shall_v examine_v the_o more_o brief_o because_o many_o of_o your_o proof_n be_v repetition_n of_o your_o former_a argument_n already_o answer_v sect_n i._o whether_o any_o protestant_n have_v hold_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n before_o luther_n fall_n be_v whole_o extinguish_v your_o first_o thesis_n be_v 364._o be_v pag._n 364._o many_o papist_n in_o their_o adversnesse_n to_o protestant_n who_o they_o seek_v to_o traduce_v do_v impute_v unto_o they_o this_o faithless_a paradox_n as_o to_o say_v that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v sometime_o extinguish_v a_o false_a doctrine_n say_v you_o which_o protestant_n never_o teach_v if_o protestant_n never_o teach_v this_o faithless_a doctrine_n why_o do_v luther_n when_o he_o begin_v to_o erect_v your_o new_a church_n say_v 497._o say_v praef._n in_o 1._o tom_n &_o cont_n reg._n angl._n foe_o 497._o he_o have_v none_o to_o assist_v he_o but_o be_v leave_v alone_o and_o alone_o stand_v in_o the_o battle_n forsake_v of_o all_o why_o do_v caluin_n say_v 141._o say_v ep._n 141._o it_o be_v absurd_a that_o since_o we_o have_v be_v enforce_v to_o divide_v ourselves_o from_o all_o the_o world_n we_o shall_v now_o in_o our_o very_a beginning_n disagree_v among_o our_o self_n why_o do_v he_o say_v sadolet_n say_v respon_n ad_fw-la sadolet_n it_o be_v public_a and_o notorious_a to_o all_o learned_a and_o unlearned_a that_o when_o the_o principality_n of_o the_o b._n of_o rome_n be_v erect_v the_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n be_v prostrate_v his_o glory_n extinguish_v religion_n abolish_v the_o church_n destroy_v and_o hope_v of_o salvation_n utter_o overthrow_v why_o do_v milius_n say_v 137._o say_v august_n confess_v explic_a art_n 7._o de_fw-fr eccl._n pag._n 137._o if_o there_o have_v be_v right_a believer_n before_o luther_n there_o have_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o lutheran_n reformation_n why_o morgensterne_n 141._o morgensterne_n tract_n de_fw-fr eccles_n p._n 141._o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o think_v that_o in_o the_o time_n before_o luther_n any_o have_v the_o purity_n of_o doctrine_n and_o that_o luther_n shall_v receive_v it_o from_o they_o and_o not_o they_o from_o luther_n it_o be_v manifest_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n that_o before_o luthert_n time_n all_o church_n be_v overwhelm_v with_o cimmerian_a darkness_n and_o that_o luther_n be_v divine_o raise_v up_o to_o discover_v the_o same_o and_o to_o restore_v the_o light_n of_o true_a doctrine_n and_o in_o regard_n thereof_o luther_n boast_v say_v 1525._o say_v ep._n ad_fw-la argentin_n anno_o 1525._o christum_fw-la à _fw-la nobis_fw-la primò_fw-la vulgatum_fw-la audemus_fw-la gloriari_fw-la why_o do_v camierus_fw-la say_v 1601._o say_v ep._n jesuit_n part_n altera_fw-la geneu_fw-fr 1601._o that_o error_n do_v not_o only_o possess_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n as_o in_o time_n of_o the_o arian_n but_o that_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o church_n by_o apostasy_n be_v fall_v from_o christ_n why_o do_v simon_n the_o voyon_n a_o genevian_a minister_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o doctor_n lect._n doctor_n praefat._n ad_fw-la lect._n say_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 605._o falsehood_n prevail_v and_o then_o be_v the_o whole_a
he_o and_o to_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o the_o whole_a western_a church_n humble_o crave_v to_o be_v admit_v into_o their_o communion_n and_o to_o declare_v themselves_o free_a from_o suspicion_n of_o heresy_n with_o which_o they_o have_v be_v charge_v protest_a that_o they_o do_v not_o believe_v otherwise_o than_o the_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n do_v and_o that_o they_o have_v hold_v former_o do_v still_o hold_v and_o will_v ever_o hold_v till_o their_o last_o breath_n the_o same_o faith_n with_o they_o whereupon_o liberius_n willing_o admit_v they_o into_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o western_a church_n and_o address_v a_o letter_n to_o fifty_o nine_o of_o they_o by_o name_n and_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o general_a express_v the_o great_a joy_n he_o conceive_v to_o understand_v that_o they_o have_v always_o agree_v in_o faith_n with_o he_o and_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o italy_n and_o of_o all_o the_o other_o western_a country_n for_o so_o be_v his_o word_n this_o be_v the_o story_n true_o set_v down_o what_o relief_n do_v you_o find_v here_o for_o your_o invisible_a church_n since_o in_o the_o very_a height_n of_o the_o arian_n heresy_n which_o be_v the_o great_a wain_n you_o can_v sinde_v in_o the_o catholic_a church_n she_o abound_v and_o shine_v like_o a_o sun_n most_o glorious_o with_o orthodox_n pastor_n and_o people_n both_o in_o the_o east_n and_o west_n show_v we_o such_o a_o protestant_a church_n before_o luther_n or_o else_o confess_v the_o truth_n that_o you_o have_v no_o church_n before_o luther_n but_o you_o tell_v we_o 369._o we_o pag_n 369._o with_o how_o great_a a_o cloud_n of_o obscurity_n the_o church_n shall_v be_v cover_v in_o the_o time_n of_o antichrist_n &_o prove_v it_o out_o of_o the_o rhemist_n who_o make_v whole_o against_o you_o for_o albeit_o they_o grant_v that_o then_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o public_a seat_n of_o government_n in_o the_o church_n nor_o public_a exercise_n of_o ecclesiastical_a function_n nor_o public_a intercourse_n with_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n as_o there_o be_v not_o this_o day_n in_o cyprus_n nor_o in_o england_n yet_o there_o shall_v not_o want_v orthodox_n pastor_n and_o people_n remain_v in_o due_a obedience_n to_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o communicate_v with_o she_o not_o only_o in_o hart_n but_o practise_v the_o same_o in_o secret_a and_o make_v public_a profession_n thereof_o of_o if_o occasion_n require_v it_o this_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o rhemist_n and_o of_o all_o catholic_a writer_n wherefore_o as_o catholic_n be_v not_o in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n invisible_a nor_o yet_o so_o obscure_a but_o that_o their_o constaney_n be_v know_v and_o renown_v throughout_o the_o christian_a world_n so_o likewise_o shall_v the_o faithful_a be_v in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n nor_o do_v costerus_n ribera_n pererius_n acosta_n viegas_n or_o any_o of_o the_o father_n which_o you_o object_n 370._o object_n pag._n 370._o teach_v aught_o to_o the_o contrary_n the_o testimony_n of_o s._n hilary_n which_o you_o object_n 3â8_n object_n pag._n 3â8_n s._n augustine_n have_v answer_v long_o since_o 48._o since_o ep._n 48._o for_o it_o be_v object_v to_o he_o by_o vincentius_n the_o rogatist_n of_o who_o spirit_n and_o belief_n you_o show_v yourself_o to_o be_v urge_v against_o we_o the_o same_o testimony_n he_o urge_v against_o s._n augustine_n who_o not_o only_o in_o that_o place_n as_o you_o have_v hear_v teach_v that_o if_o the_o church_n be_v sometime_o obscure_v and_o as_o it_o be_v shadow_v with_o cloud_n by_o the_o multitude_n of_o scandal_n that_o be_v persecution_n when_o sinner_n bend_v their_o bow_n to_o wound_v she_o in_o the_o obscurity_n of_o the_o moon_n yet_o even_o then_o she_o be_v eminent_a in_o she_o most_o constant_a professor_n but_o also_o in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o city_n of_o god_n 8._o god_n l._n 20._o c._n 8._o speak_v profess_o of_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o antichrist_n he_o say_v she_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o obscure_v that_o either_o antichrist_n shall_v not_o find_v she_o or_o when_o he_o have_v find_v she_o be_v able_a with_o his_o persecution_n to_o overthrow_v she_o but_o that_o even_o then_o faithful_a parent_n shall_v with_o great_a devotion_n procure_v baptism_n for_o their_o child_n &_o that_o as_o many_o shall_v fall_v from_o the_o church_n so_o other_o shall_v stand_v constant_a and_o other_o shall_v enter_v a_o new_a which_o before_o be_v out_o of_o she_o and_o in_o particular_a the_o jew_n who_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v be_v convert_v to_o christ_n 29._o christ_n s._n aug._n ibid._n c._n 29._o and_o the_o same_o be_v testify_v by_o s._n gregory_n ezechiel_n gregory_n hom._n 12._o in_o ezechiel_n who_o you_o mis-cite_a 370._o mis-cite_a pag._n 370._o for_o the_o word_n you_o object_n out_o of_o his_o moral_n on_o job_n be_v not_o there_o to_o be_v find_v sect_n iu._n what_o cause_n may_v suffice_v to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o a_o particular_a church_n your_o five_o thesis_n be_v 370._o be_v pag._n 370._o all_o particular_a church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v forsake_v for_o every_o unsoundnesse_n in_o either_o manner_n worship_n or_o doctrine_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o this_o thesis_n we_o agree_v with_o you_o but_o you_o agree_v not_o with_o yourself_o for_o before_o you_o tell_v we_o 11.12_o we_o pag._n 11.12_o that_o the_o catholic_a church_n be_v in_o every_o part_n perfect_a and_o consist_v only_o of_o the_o sanctify_a elect_a of_o god_n but_o here_o you_o say_v 371._o say_v pag_n 371._o that_o there_o be_v scarce_o to_o be_v find_v any_o one_o example_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o sanctify_a professor_n it_o scarce_o any_o particular_a church_n can_v be_v find_v consist_v only_o of_o sanctify_a professor_n how_o be_v it_o true_a that_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v only_o of_o the_o sanctify_a elect_a of_o god_n for_o the_o universal_a church_n consist_v of_o all_o the_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o world_n again_o here_o you_o inveigh_v against_o the_o separatist_n for_o divide_v themselves_o from_o you_o for_o only_a scandal_n take_v at_o the_o wicked_a life_n of_o your_o professor_n may_v not_o we_o then_o just_o except_o against_o you_o for_o object_v so_o often_o the_o vice_n of_o some_o few_o pope_n to_o make_v your_o departure_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n more_o justifiable_a the_o second_o part_n of_o your_o thesis_n be_v false_a for_o no_o worship_n no_o rite_n or_o ceremony_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n allow_v or_o permit_v to_o particular_a church_n in_o the_o administration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n or_o in_o any_o part_n of_o their_o service_n be_v unsound_a and_o therefore_o as_o such_o difference_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a cause_n for_o one_o particular_a church_n to_o separate_v itself_o from_o other_o so_o on_o the_o contrary_a if_o a_o particular_a church_n use_v any_o ecclesiastical_a observation_n or_o ceremony_n disallow_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o mother_n of_o all_o church_n that_o worship_n be_v unsound_a and_o such_o a_o church_n be_v schismatical_a and_o to_o be_v forsake_v and_o if_o it_o persist_v obstinate_o in_o that_o schism_n become_v heretical_a so_o many_o of_o the_o asian_a church_n persist_v obstinate_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n according_a to_o the_o jewish_a custom_n after_o the_o prohibition_n of_o pius_n the_o first_o pope_n of_o that_o name_n be_v just_o condemn_v and_o cut_v of_o from_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o victor_n a_o boly_n pope_n and_o martyr_n and_o his_o sentence_n be_v confirm_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a &_o many_o other_o in_o so_o much_o that_o the_o observer_n of_o that_o custom_n have_v ever_o since_o be_v judge_v heretic_n and_o register_v as_o such_o under_o the_o name_n of_o quartadecimani_fw-la by_o all_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n that_o have_v make_v catalogue_n of_o heresy_n the_o three_o part_n of_o your_o thesis_n that_o all_o particular_a church_n may_v err_v in_o some_o point_n as_o the_o corinthian_n do_v in_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n and_o the_o galatian_n in_o teach_v a_o necessary_a observation_n of_o the_o law_n of_o moses_n together_o with_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o yet_o s._n paul_n 1.2_o paul_n 1._o cor._n 1.2_o galat._n 1.2_o call_v they_o both_o church_n and_o church_n of_o god_n because_o they_o be_v ready_a to_o be_v reform_v and_o be_v admonish_v of_o their_o error_n to_o abandon_v it_o and_o obey_v the_o truth_n but_o not_o to_o be_v willing_a to_o learn_v and_o not_o to_o yield_v to_o truth_n sufficient_o propose_v be_v proper_a to_o the_o synagogue_n of_o satan_n and_o the_o church_n of_o the_o malignant_a all_o this_o you_o allow_v as_o true_a doctrine_n take_v out_o of_o bellarmine_n what_o
the_o proud_a but_o consent_n with_o the_o humble_a wherefore_o this_o canon_n first_o make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n and_o afterward_o renew_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n be_v never_o confirm_v but_o still_o resist_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o therefore_o have_v always_o remain_v invalid_a that_o say_v gelasius_n vinculo_fw-la gelasius_n de_fw-fr anathem_n vinculo_fw-la which_o the_o see_v apostolic_a consent_v not_o to_o the_o emperor_n impose_v it_o not_o nor_o anatolius_n usurp_v it_o but_o all_o be_v put_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o see_v apostolic_a and_o therefore_o what_o the_o see_v apostolic_a confirm_v of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n have_v remain_v valid_a and_o what_o that_o see_v have_v reject_v can_v never_o obtain_v any_o force_n and_o she_o have_v annul_v that_o only_a which_o the_o synodical_a assembly_n adjudge_v to_o be_v usurp_v against_o order_n it_o rest_v therefore_o that_o albeit_o this_o decree_n have_v many_o other_o nullity_n yet_o this_o one_o of_o the_o want_n of_o confirmation_n from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a abundant_o convince_v the_o invalidity_n thereof_o as_o have_v be_v already_o prove_v and_o because_o anatolius_n know_v that_o if_o it_o be_v once_o understand_v that_o this_o canon_n be_v resist_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o see_v apostolic_a it_o will_v be_v condemn_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o catholic_n in_o the_o world_n he_o crafty_o suppress_v the_o letter_n of_o condemnation_n as_o leo_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o emperor_n martian_a testify_v 59_o testify_v ep._n 59_o i_o write_v to_o your_o glory_n and_o to_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n letter_n which_o evident_o show_v that_o i_o approve_v those_o thing_n which_o have_v be_v define_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n concern_v the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o because_o by_o the_o same_o letter_n i_o reprove_v those_o thing_n which_o by_o occasion_n of_o the_o synod_n have_v be_v unlawful_o attempt_v he_o anatolius_n rather_o choose_v to_o conceal_v my_o applause_n then_o to_o publish_v his_o own_o ambition_n and_o to_o pulcheria_n the_o empress_n 60._o empress_n ep._n 60._o whereas_o the_o most_o religious_a emperor_n have_v will_v i_o to_o write_v letter_n to_o all_o the_o bishop_n which_o assist_v at_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n to_o confirm_v what_o be_v there_o define_v concern_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n i_o have_v willing_o perform_v it_o lest_o the_o deceit_n full_a dissimulation_n of_o some_o may_v breed_v any_o doubt_n of_o my_o sentence_n although_o by_o mean_n of_o the_o b._n of_o constantinople_n to_o who_o i_o have_v large_o testify_v my_o joy_n what_o i_o have_v write_v may_v have_v come_v to_o the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o if_o he_o have_v not_o rather_o choose_v to_o conceal_v my_o contentment_n then_o to_o publish_v the_o rebuke_n of_o his_o own_o ambition_n wherefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o as_o this_o decree_n when_o it_o be_v first_o make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constantinople_n remain_v invalid_a for_o want_v of_o confirmation_n from_o the_o see_v apostolic_a 6._o apostolic_a see_v above_o chap._n 17._o sect_n 5._o &_o 6._o so_o for_o the_o same_o want_n it_o take_v no_o effect_n when_o it_o be_v renew_v in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o so_o much_o that_o anatolius_n be_v enforce_v to_o desist_v from_o his_o claim_n and_o excuse_v the_o attempt_n he_o have_v make_v lay_v the_o blame_n on_o other_o as_o it_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o these_o word_n of_o leo_n to_o he_o 7â_n he_o ep._n 7â_n this_o thy_o fault_n which_o to_o augment_v thy_o power_n thou_o have_v commit_v as_o thou_o say_v by_o the_o persuasion_n of_o other_o thy_o charity_n have_v blot_v out_o better_a and_o more_o sincere_o if_o thou_o have_v not_o impute_v whole_o to_o the_o counsel_n of_o thy_o clergy_n that_o which_o can_v not_o be_v attempt_v without_o thy_o allowance_n etc._n etc._n but_o dear_a brother_n i_o be_o glad_a that_o thy_o charity_n protest_v thou_o be_v now_o displease_v with_o that_o which_o even_o then_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v please_v thou_o the_o profession_n of_o thy_o love_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o christian_a prince_n be_v sufficient_a to_o re-admit_a thou_o into_o common_a grace_n nor_o do_v thy_o amendment_n seem_v late_a that_o have_v get_v so_o reverend_a a_o surety_n this_o recantation_n of_o anatolius_n show_v that_o his_o attempt_n of_o have_v the_o second_o place_n after_o the_o pope_n and_o enjoy_v the_o like_a privilege_n after_o he_o be_v unlawful_a and_o proceed_v mere_o from_o his_o ambition_n sect_n v._o falsification_n and_o untruth_n of_o doctor_n morton_n discover_v and_o his_o argument_n answer_v what_o you_o produce_v in_o defence_n of_o this_o canon_n be_v either_o falsification_n untruth_n or_o frivolous_a cavil_n for_o first_o you_o falsify_v azor_n 118._o azor_n pag._n 118._o his_o word_n be_v the_o canon_n and_o decree_n of_o counsel_n which_o be_v either_o of_o faith_n or_o of_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o of_o nature_n the_o pope_n can_v neither_o annul_v nor_o alter_v but_o if_o the_o decree_n and_o canon_n be_v of_o those_o thing_n which_o belong_v to_o human_a right_n he_o may_v annul_v they_o or_o alter_v they_o in_o whole_a or_o in_o part_n and_o this_o say_v he_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o divine_n and_o canonist_n you_o very_o honest_o mangle_v his_o word_n not_o mention_v the_o first_o part_n of_o they_o in_o which_o he_o say_v the_o pope_n can_v neither_o annul_v nor_o alter_v the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n which_o be_v of_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o of_o thing_n command_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n or_o nature_n and_o whereas_o he_o add_v that_o the_o pope_n can_v annul_v or_o alter_v the_o decree_n of_o counsel_n which_o be_v of_o human_a right_n you_o in_o your_o english_a leave_n out_o those_o word_n which_o be_v of_o human_a right_n to_o persuade_v your_o reader_n that_o azor_n say_v and_o that_o our_o divine_n and_o canoniste_n with_o common_a consent_n allow_v the_o pope_n power_n to_o change_v the_o decree_n of_o faith_n and_o annul_v the_o precept_n of_o god_n and_o of_o nature_n whereas_o he_o speak_v only_o of_o law_n that_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a discipline_n which_o according_a to_o diverse_a occasion_n and_o circumstance_n may_v be_v alter_v for_o the_o good_a of_o the_o church_n if_o this_o be_v not_o a_o imposture_n what_o be_v 2._o you_o object_n 1â9_n object_n pag._n 12_o 1â9_n the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n think_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n get_v the_o primacy_n not_o by_o divine_a but_o by_o humane_a right_n to_o wit_n because_o rome_n be_v the_o chief_a imperial_a seat_n answer_n there_o be_v two_o cause_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o one_o immediate_a the_o other_o mediate_v the_o immediate_a cause_n be_v the_o dignity_n of_o s._n peter_n wherewith_o christ_n honour_v he_o when_o he_o make_v he_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o church_n 16.18_o church_n math._n 16.18_o and_o the_o pastor_n of_o his_o flock_n 15.16.17_o flock_n joan._n 21._o vers_fw-la 15.16.17_o and_o so_o much_o the_o father_n of_o chalcedon_n acknowledge_v when_o they_o call_v the_o pope_n epistle_n the_o speech_n of_o the_o see_v of_o s._n peter_n imperat_fw-la peter_n in_o allocut_n ad_fw-la imperat_fw-la and_o when_o they_o say_v to_o leo_n leon._n leo_n in_o relat_n ad_fw-la leon._n dioscorus_n have_v extend_v his_o frenzy_n against_o he_o to_o who_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o vine_n which_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n be_v commit_v by_o our_o saviour_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o your_o apostolic_a holiness_n the_o same_o truth_n the_o milevitan_a council_n in_o which_o s._n augustine_n be_v secretary_n have_v profess_v not_o long_o before_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n authority_n to_o be_v of_o divine_a right_n when_o speak_v to_o innocentius_n they_o say_v 92._o say_v aug._n ep_v 92._o that_o his_o authority_n be_v take_v from_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o gelasius_n with_o a_o council_n of_o 70._o bishop_n apocryph_n bishop_n in_o decreto_fw-la de_fw-fr lib._n apocryph_n the_o roman_a church_n have_v not_o be_v prefer_v before_o other_o church_n by_o the_o constitution_n of_o synod_n but_o have_v obtain_v the_o primacy_n by_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n in_o the_o gospel_n and_o as_o the_o same_o gelasius_n right_o observe_v dardan_n observe_v ep._n ad_fw-la episc_n dardan_n milan_n ravenna_n sirmium_n trevers_n and_o nicomedia_n be_v for_o a_o long_a time_n seat_n of_o the_o empire_n and_o yet_o the_o father_n never_o think_v that_o any_o primacy_n be_v therefore_o due_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o those_o city_n nevertheless_o it_o may_v be_v say_v in_o a_o true_a sense_n that_o the_o mediate_v and_o remote_a cause_n of_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o cause_n which_o move_v s._n peter_n